| Back to Home Page | Back to Book Index
|
Malachi Chapter
Three
Malachi 3
Chapter Contents
The coming of Christ. (1-6) The Jews reproved for their
corruptions. (7-12) God's care of his people; The distinction between the
righteous and the wicked. (13-18)
Commentary on Malachi 3:1-6
(Read Malachi 3:1-6)
The first words of this chapter seem an answer to the
scoffers of those days. Here is a prophecy of the appearing of John the
Baptist. He is Christ's harbinger. He shall prepare the way before him
by
calling men to repentance. The Messiah had been long called
"He that
should come
" and now shortly he will come. He is the Messenger of the
covenant. Those who seek Jesus
shall find pleasure in him
often when not
looked for. The Lord Jesus
prepares the sinner's heart to be his temple
by
the ministry of his word and the convictions of his Spirit
and he enters it as
the Messenger of peace and consolation. No hypocrite or formalist can endure
his doctrine
or stand before his tribunal. Christ came to distinguish men
to
separate between the precious and the vile. He shall sit as a Refiner. Christ
by his gospel
shall purify and reform his church
and by his Spirit working
with it
shall regenerate and cleanse souls. He will take away the dross found
in them. He will separate their corruptions
which render their faculties
worthless and useless. The believer needs not fear the fiery trial of
afflictions and temptations
by which the Saviour refines his gold. He will
take care it is not more intense or longer than is needful for his good; and
this trial will end far otherwise than that of the wicked. Christ will
by
interceding for them
make them accepted. Where no fear of God is
no good is
to be expected. Evil pursues sinners. God is unchangeable. And though the
sentence against evil works be not executed speedily
yet it will be executed;
the Lord is as much an enemy to sin as ever. We may all apply this to
ourselves. Because we have to do with a God that changes not
therefore it is
that we are not consumed; because his compassions fail not.
Commentary on Malachi 3:7-12
(Read Malachi 3:7-12)
The men of that generation turned away from God
they had
not kept his ordinances. God gives them a gracious call. But they said
Wherein
shall we return? God notices what returns our hearts make to the calls of his
word. It shows great perverseness in sin
when men make afflictions excuses for
sin
which are sent to part between them and their sins. Here is an earnest
exhortation to reform. God must be served in the first place; and the interest
of our souls ought to be preferred before that of our bodies. Let them trust
God to provide for their comfort. God has blessings ready for us
but through
the weakness of our faith and the narrowness of our desires
we have not room
to receive them. He who makes trial will find nothing is lost by honouring the
Lord with his substance.
Commentary on Malachi 3:13-18
(Read Malachi 3:13-18)
Among the Jews at this time
some plainly discovered
themselves to be children of the wicked one. The yoke of Christ is easy. But
those who work wickedness
tempt God by presumptuous sins. Judge of things as
they will appear when the doom of these proud sinners comes to be executed.
Those that feared the Lord
spake kindly
for preserving and promoting mutual
love
when sin thus abounded. They spake one to another
in the language of
those that fear the Lord
and think on his name. As evil communications corrupt
good minds and manners
so good communications confirm them. A book of
remembrance was written before God. He will take care that his children perish
not with those that believe not. They shall be vessels of mercy and honour
when the rest are made vessels of wrath and dishonour. The saints are God's
jewels; they are dear to him. He will preserve them as his jewels
when the
earth is burned up like dross. Those who now own God for theirs
he will then
own for his. It is our duty to serve God with the disposition of children; and
he will not have his children trained up in idleness; they must do him service
from a principle of love. Even God's children stand in need of sparing mercy.
All are righteous or wicked
such as serve God
or such as serve him not: all
are going to heaven or to hell. We are often deceived in our opinions
concerning both the one and the other; but at the bar of Christ
every man's
character will be known. As to ourselves
we have need to think among which we
shall have our lot; and
as to others
we must judge nothing before the time.
But in the end all the world will confess that those alone were wise and happy
who served the Lord and trusted in Him.
¢w¢w Matthew Henry¡mConcise Commentary on Malachi¡n
Malachi 3
Verse 1
[1]
Behold
I will send my messenger
and he shall prepare the way before me: and
the Lord
whom ye seek
shall suddenly come to his temple
even the messenger
of the covenant
whom ye delight in: behold
he shall come
saith the LORD of
hosts.
I ¡X The Messiah.
My messenger ¡X
John the Baptist.
The Lord ¡X
The Messiah.
Whom ye seek ¡X
Whom ye
who truly fear God
long and wait for.
Suddenly come ¡X
After the coming of his fore-runner.
To his temple ¡X
That which was the second temple at Jerusalem
lately built by Zerubbabel and
Joshua.
The messenger ¡X
The angel of the covenant
the Messiah
in whose blood the covenant between God
and man was confirmed.
Whom ye delight in ¡X
You Jews
among whom
few there are
who do not please themselves to think of
his coming
tho' from various motives.
Verse 2
[2] But who may abide the day of his coming? and who shall stand when he
appeareth? for he is like a refiner's fire
and like fullers' soap:
Abide ¡X
Who shall be able to stand under the weight of those crosses which in that day
will fall on all sorts of men? The day - This day was from his preaching
'till
the utter destruction of Jerusalem
about seventy years after the birth of
Christ.
A refiner's fire ¡X
Some are like metals
which nothing but a fierce fire can purge
such fire
shall the troubles of these days be.
Fuller's soap ¡X As
boiling waters
into which
spotted cloaths are thrown
and as the rubbing of
them with soap; so that day will prove to all
a day of great trial
to purge
and refine.
Verse 3
[3] And
he shall sit as a refiner and purifier of silver: and he shall purify the sons
of Levi
and purge them as gold and silver
that they may offer unto the LORD
an offering in righteousness.
He shall fit ¡X As
resolved to attend his work and finish it.
He shall purify ¡X
The effect of this fiery trial
shall be the thorough cleansing of the persons
that are to pass through it.
Sons of Levi ¡X
Either the Jewish Levites
or all Christians
who are made priests unto God.
In righteousness ¡X
That they may offer themselves
their souls and bodies to God
in righteousness
and true holiness.
Verse 4
[4] Then
shall the offering of Judah and Jerusalem be pleasant unto the LORD
as in the
days of old
and as in former years.
The offerings ¡X
The services and duties of the whole Christian church.
Pleasant ¡X
Well pleasing to him.
Verse 5
[5] And I will come near to you to judgment; and I will be a swift witness
against the sorcerers
and against the adulterers
and against false swearers
and against those that oppress the hireling in his wages
the widow
and the
fatherless
and that turn aside the stranger from his right
and fear not me
saith the LORD of hosts.
I will come near ¡X
You have spoken as if you thought I was far off
but you shall see I am near.
To you ¡X O
Jews
not those very persons Malachi preached to
but those who were living
when the Messiah came.
Verse 6
[6] For
I am the LORD
I change not; therefore ye sons of Jacob are not consumed.
I change not ¡X I
have an unchangeable hatred to sin: and my long suffering also changeth not
therefore you are not consumed in your sins.
Not consumed ¡X
God is the same in his wisdom to order the rewards of good and bad in the
fittest season
therefore neither the one nor the other are consumed
but
preserved to the season appointed of God.
Verse 7
[7] Even
from the days of your fathers ye are gone away from mine ordinances
and have
not kept them. Return unto me
and I will return unto you
saith the LORD of
hosts. But ye said
Wherein shall we return?
From mine ordinances ¡X Which either directed my worship
or your dealings one with another.
Verse 9
[9] Ye
are cursed with a curse: for ye have robbed me
even this whole nation.
Cursed with a curse ¡X
Are greatly cursed.
Verse 10
[10]
Bring ye all the tithes into the storehouse
that there may be meat in mine
house
and prove me now herewith
saith the LORD of hosts
if I will not open
you the windows of heaven
and pour you out a blessing
that there shall not be
room enough to receive it.
Bring ye ¡X
Make a punctual and full payment of all tithes; about this did Nehemiah contend
with the rulers
and made them comply
and then all Judah obeyed and did the
like
Nehemiah 13:10-13.
To the store-house ¡X
This was one or more large rooms
built on purpose for this use.
That there may be meat ¡X For the priests and Levites to live upon.
Prove me ¡X
Make the experiment.
The windows of heaven ¡X A kind of proverbial speech
to express great abundance.
A blessing ¡X
First of rain to water the earth
next a blessing of corn
wine and oil
and
all other products of the earth.
Verse 11
[11] And
I will rebuke the devourer for your sakes
and he shall not destroy the fruits
of your ground; neither shall your vine cast her fruit before the time in the
field
saith the LORD of hosts.
The devourer ¡X
All kind of devourers
the locusts
the canker-worm
and the caterpillar
which
though they are in incredible multitudes
yet a rebuke from God will check them
all at once
as if they were but one.
For your sakes ¡X
For your good.
Your vine ¡X
Your vine shall carry their fruit 'till they are fully ripe.
Verse 12
[12] And
all nations shall call you blessed: for ye shall be a delightsome land
saith
the LORD of hosts.
All nations ¡X
All that are about you.
A delightsome land ¡X
The revival of religion in a land
will make it delight-some
both to God
and
to all good men.
Verse 15
[15] And
now we call the proud happy; yea
they that work wickedness are set up; yea
they that tempt God are even delivered.
And now ¡X
You say
we see before our eyes
that the proud contemners of God and his law
are the flourishing ones.
Delivered ¡X
Escape all punishment.
Verse 16
[16] Then
they that feared the LORD spake often one to another: and the LORD hearkened
and heard it
and a book of remembrance was written before him for them that
feared the LORD
and that thought upon his name.
Then ¡X
When contempt of God was grown so high.
That feared the Lord ¡X Those that were truly religious.
Spake often ¡X
Conversed together the more frequently.
And a book ¡X
All this is spoken after the manner of men.
For them ¡X On
their behalf.
Verse 17
[17] And
they shall be mine
saith the LORD of hosts
in that day when I make up my
jewels; and I will spare them
as a man spareth his own son that serveth him.
Make up my jewels ¡X
This shall be fully made good in the last great day
and in heaven to eternal
ages.
I will spare them ¡X In
the mean time they shall be spared
pitied
preserved
and loved.
Verse 18
[18] Then
shall ye return
and discern between the righteous and the wicked
between him
that serveth God and him that serveth him not.
Ye ¡X Ye contemners of God
and religion
return to your reason
forced by the convincing power of God's
judgments.
Discern ¡X
Clearly see the happiness of the righteous
and your own misery
who perish in
your wickedness.
¢w¢w John Wesley¡mExplanatory Notes on Malachi¡n
Malachi
3:3 says: "He will sit as a refiner and purifier of silver."
This verse puzzled some women in a Bible study
and they wondered what this statement meant about the character and nature of God.
One of the women offered to find out the process of refining silver and get
back to the group at their next Bible Study.
That week
the woman called a silversmith and made an appointment to watch him
at work. She didn't mention anything about the reason for her interest beyond
her curiosity about the process of refining silver.
As she watched the silversmith
he held a piece of silver over the fire and let
it heat up. He explained that in refining silver
one needed to hold the silver
in the middle of the fire where the flames were hottest as to burn away all the
impurities.
The woman thought about God holding us in such a hot spot; then she thought
again about the verse that says: "He sits as a refiner and purifier of
silver." She asked the silversmith if it was true that he had to sit there
in front of the fire the whole time the silver was being refined.
The man answered that yes
he not only had to sit there holding the silver
but
he had to keep his eyes on the silver the entire time it was in the fire. If
the silver was left a moment too long in the flames
it would be destroyed.
The woman was silent for a moment. Then she asked the silversmith
"How do
you know when the silver is fully refined?"
He smiled at her and answered
"Oh
that's easy -- when I see my image in
it"
If today you are feeling the heat of the fire
remember that God has his eye on
you and will keep watching you until He sees His image in you.
Pass this on right now. This very moment
someone needs to know that God is
watching over them.
And
whatever they're going through
they'll be a better person in the end.
"Life is a coin. You can spend it anyway you wish
but you can only spend
it once."
The Record of the
God-Fearing Remnant
¡¥A book of remembrance was written
before Him for them that feared the Lord¡¦ (3.16)¡XRight Condition and Right
Position.
I. In their Heart¡X¡¥they feared the
Lord¡¦ (3.16)
II. In their Mind¡X¡¥they thought on
His Name¡¦ (3.16)
III. With their Mouth¡X¡¥they spoke
often one to another¡¦ (3.16)
IV. In God¡¦s Review¡X¡¥the Lord
hearkened and heard¡¦ (3.16)
V. In God¡¦s Register¡X¡¥a book of
remembrance was written down¡¦ (3.16)
VI. In God¡¦s Reckoning¡XHis ¡¥special
treasure¡¦ (3.17 Margin)
VII. In God¡¦s Record¡X¡¥I will spare
them as a man spareth his own son¡¦ (3.17)
¢w¢w Archibald Naismith¡mOutlines for Sermons¡n
03 Chapter 3
Verses 1-5
Verses 1-6
Behold
I will send My
messenger.
Messiah¡¦s messenger
The coming of the Messiah
was in the time of the world¡¦s deepest wants. As in all instances of national
degeneracy
two special causes bore their fruit in Malachi¡¦s time.
1. Neglect of the Divine ordinances. No Divine law has ever been
given that was not essential to human well-being. A neglect of the Divine
standard is consequently a sin against one¡¦s self. There is not a Bible precept
that is unreasonable
and therefore it is unreasonable to give no heed to what
is written. In this respect the sufferings of Israel were self-imposed.
2. Decay of spiritual life. It is hardly possible to realise the
depth of wickedness portrayed by the prophet.
The priests despised the
name of Jehovah. The people had robbed God
and declared it a vain thing to
serve Him. In a twofold way we observe the relation of such a lack of service
to the national life. This sin resulted in the alienation of the hearts of the
children from their parents. It is a mark of national decay when the children
make light of their fathers
when they scoff at former virtues. Again
sin
against God always carries with it wrong-doing against man. Love cannot be
localised upon men while withheld from God. The man who cannot truly honour God
will not truly honour man. Our deeds declare our religion. Well did the prophet
ask
¡§Who may abide the day of His coming?¡¨ Who shall bear the tests of His
judgment? The prophesied coming of Elijah referred to John the Baptist. There
is something sublime in the rugged character that confronted a degenerate
nation. He only who knows the Divine greatness and power can have courage to
rebuke the self-conceit that resists God. The life of the Baptist interprets
the two great lessons of the prophecy in our text calling for notice.
1. Our hope rests in the unchanging God. The idea of changeableness
in the one trusted destroys all faith in its very essence. It is unhuman to
love the being that to-morrow may turn against us. But for this Divine
characteristic no sinner could stand in God¡¦s sight. It was this truth against
whose bright background Israel¡¦s sin is of the deepest guilt.
2. The suicide of unbelief. God added no terrors to Israel¡¦s
sufferings in the fiery day. They had but to remember their words
¡§His blood
be on us
and on our children.¡¨ Unbelief can stay the exercise of Divine mercy
towards the individual
but it cannot keep back its own retribution. It can
give blindness to the heart
but it cannot blot out the Divine judgment.
Against the darkness of the prophet¡¦s picture there is another
of brighter
meaning. There is a healing power in the beams of the Sun of Righteousness.
Light takes the place of darkness. The righteous shall not be as flowers to
fade and to die
but rather
strong and a source of joy
like the herds that
feed in richest pastures. Jehovah is that blazing sun of glory. Unbelief brings
a sunset of terror
while righteousness is itself the sunrise of everlasting
joy. (Sermons by Monday Club.)
The appearance of the
Great Deliverer
The event announced is the
appearance of that Great Deliverer who had for many ages been the hope of
Israel
and was to be a blessing to all the families of the earth. Concerning
this desire of nations
Malachi here delivers no new prediction; but
by an
earnest asseveration
uttered in the name and
as it were
in the person of the
Deity
he means to confirm that general expectation which his predecessors had
excited.
1. The characters under which the person is described whose coming is
foretold. ¡§The Lord
¡¨ or Proprietor. It denotes dominion. ¡§The Lord shall come
to His temple.¡¨ That is Jehovah¡¦s. Then the Christ whose coming Malachi
announces is no other than the Jehovah of the Old Testament. From many texts it
may be gathered that the promised Messiah is described by the more ancient
prophets as no other than the everlasting God
the Jehovah of the Israelites.
¡§The Messenger of the covenant.¡¨ Not the Mosaic. Another covenant is spoken of
as the new and the everlasting covenant. Of this covenant
so clearly foretold
and so circumstantially described by the preceding prophets
Jeremiah and
Ezekiel
Malachi thinks it unnecessary to introduce any particular description.
The Messenger of the covenant is Jehovah¡¦s servant
for a message is a service;
it implies a person sending
and a person sent; in the person who sendeth there
must be authority to send
--submission to that authority in the person sent.
But the servant of the Lord Jehovah is the Lord Jehovah Himself; not the same
person with the sender
but bearing the same name because united in that
mysterious nature and undivided substance which the name imports. The same
person therefore is servant and Lord. Another character of the Messiah must be
added. He is the Messenger whom ¡§they delight in¡¨ But this expression here is
ironical; the words express the very reverse of that which they seem to affirm.
There is more or less of severity in this ironical language
by which it stands
remarkably distinguished from the levity of ridicule
and is particularly
adapted to the purposes of invective and rebuke. It denotes conscious
superiority
sometimes indignation
in the person who employs it; it excites
shame
confusion
and remorse in the person against whom it is employed
--in a
third person
contempt and abhorrence of him who is the object of it. Irony is
the keenest weapon of the orator.
2. The particulars of the business upon which the person announced is
said to come. It is reducible to these--the final judgment
when the wicked
shall be destroyed; a previous trial or experiment of the different tempers and
dispositions of men
in order to that judgment; and something to be done for
their amendment and improvement. The trial is signified under the image of an
assayer¡¦s separation of the nobler metals from the dross with which they are
blended in the ore. The means used for the amendment and improvement of
mankind
by the Messiah¡¦s atonement for our sins
by the preaching of the
Gospel
and by the internal influences of the Holy Spirit
--all these means
employed under the Messiah¡¦s covenant
for the reformation of men
are
expressed under the image of a fuller¡¦s soap
which restores a soiled garment
to its original purity. One particular effect of this purification is to be
that the ¡§sons of Levi¡¨ will be purified. The worship of God shall be purged
from all hypocrisy and superstition
and reduced to a few simple rules
the
natural expressions of true devotion. ¡§And then shall this offering of Judah
and Jerusalem¡¨ (that is
of the true members of God¡¦s true Church) ¡§be pleasant
unto the Lord.¡¨ All these prophecies were fulfilled
or will yet be fulfilled
in Jesus of Nazareth. (Bishop Horsley.)
Messiah and His forerunner
1. John the Baptist as a kind of connecting link between the law and
the Gospel. He displayed much of the austerity of the prophets of old. He may
be said to have taught that the law was about to be swept away as a covenant of
works; there was not to be introduced any system but one of strict and
self-denying morality As he preached a baptism of repentance
and not one of mere ceremonial
purification
it became evident that the long twilight of figure and type was
about to be succeeded by the clear day of spiritual and heart work religion.
John occupied a most singular position: commissioned neither to enforce the law
nor to proclaim the Gospel. He may be called a man of two worlds. He stood
mysteriously between the law and the Gospel
being neither instructed to
marshal the shadows nor privileged to exhibit the substance. And yet with all
this John was not ignorant of the atoning sacrifice which Jesus was to offer.
From the lips of John flowed the first announcement of an expiatory sacrifice.
¡§Behold the Lamb of God.¡¨ But the preaching of the Gospel includes a vast deal
more than the showing forth of the doctrine of the dying Redeemer. Upon this
doctrine
as a foundation
rests every other; but the superstructure is not to
be confounded with the foundation. Christ must be preached as a risen
a
living
and a glorified Saviour. John was a messenger sent to prepare Christ¡¦s
way. But in every case the herald of an illustrious personage announces but
part of the business on which that personage comes.
2. Notice the titles here given to Christ: ¡§the Lord¡¨ (Adonai)
and
the ¡§Messenger of the covenant.¡¨ There is much in the latter title which has to
do with the offices of Christ. His special business was
enacting a fresh
covenant between God and the human race. The only covenant God could make is
one whereby He promises blessings and at the same time prescribes conditions.
The whole drawing up of the covenant must be
so to speak
with God. God
proposes it
and the only thing which man can have to do is merely to embrace
it. (Henry Melvill
B. D.)
¡§My messenger¡¨
I. The greatness
of John the Baptist.
1. The angel said he should be ¡§great in the sight of the Lord¡¨ (Luke 1:18). He was ¡§a prophet
¡¨ and ¡§more than a prophet.¡¨
2. What is a prophet? A teacher? Yes
but one who is taught directly
by God. He not only predicts the future
but he is the revealer of God¡¦s will
for the present.
3. John was ¡§more than a prophet.¡¨ This is explained in three ways.
4. The praise of Christ is the purest indication and guarantee of the
excellence of His forerunner.
II. The greatness
of His work.
1. He had to make ready the way of the Lord in souls
by preaching
repentance.
2. The most remarkable part of his office was that of pointing out
and bearing witness to ¡§the Light.¡¨
III. Lessons.
1. Observe how God uses
human agency in the accomplishment of His purposes.
2. The preparation is the same in all approaches of the Lord.
3. The work of the Baptist reminds us of the importance of
preparation before Holy Communion
when Christ comes hiddenly to us. (The
Thinker.)
Christ¡¦s coming
These words were spoken to the unbelieving
priests of Malachi¡¦s days
who professed that they could see no tokens of the
presence of God among His people. The Lord describes--
I. The preparation
for His coming. John the Baptist prepared the way ¡§of the Lord¡¨--
1. By his singular birth.
2. By his awakening ministry.
3. By direct testimony. ¡§He saw and bare record that this was the Son
of God.¡¨
II. The time of His
coming. Suddenly
or immediately after the preparation of His way by the
¡§messenger.¡¨ How remarkably did the facts agree with the prediction!
III. The dignity of His
coming. No mere man could use such authoritative words. ¡§He shall prepare the
way before Me.¡¨
IV. The special
business of His coming. ¡§Messenger of the covenant.¡¨ ¡§Equal with the Father
as touching
His Godhead
¡¨ Christ is at the same time ¡§ inferior to the Father as touching
His manhood
¡¨ in order that He might become the Messenger of heaven to a lost
world. He came to reveal and to fulfil His own part in a gracious covenant of
redemption for guilty sinners.
V. The certainty
of His coming. The unbelieving Jews doubted it; even the faithful were
despondent; the prediction is therefore attested by a most solemn assurance
¡§Behold
He shall come
saith the Lord of hosts.¡¨ (J. Jowett
M. A.)
The Messenger of the
covenant delighted in
This passage cannot speak
of any intervention of the Deity
like that which the nation of Israel had
often experienced; here was a prediction of the Messiah to come. His Divine
nature is declared
and yet
when He is spoken of as the Messenger of the
Almighty
we see Him as distinct from God in His human nature. He is the Lord
who should come to His own temple; and He is the Messenger or Servant of the
Lord of hosts. He is not the Messenger of the Mosaic covenant. That had long
previously been established under Moses
as its mediator. Isaiah writes of
another covenant
an ¡§everlasting covenant.¡¨ The national covenant must pass to
give way to a better. Of this new covenant
to receive the elect remnant of the
Jews
and to gather around them all the elect people of the Gentiles--of this
covenant it is here said
that the Messiah to come was to be the Messenger; He
should establish the covenant; He should be its source; He should be its
Mediator; He should be the very substance of the covenant. It was His blood
formed that covenant; when He made an atonement for transgression He rendered
it possible
because it became just and right that the Almighty should again
enter into a covenant of peace with His rebellious creatures. Look at Christ
under this character
the ¡§Messenger of the covenant
¡¨--Him who was sent of God
to establish and confirm it. He
in order to bring His people into covenant
with God
has been their substitute in suffering. He would also secure us every
best blessing. He has become our wisdom
He has also become our sanctification.
He is also our perfect example. He becomes an advocate for each of His
offending people. And He is our High Priest
touched with the feeling of our
infirmities. The prophet tells of the reception which the Saviour was to meet.
¡§Whom ye delight in.¡¨ And good reason have we to delight in this Messenger of
the covenant
if indeed we have tasted of His love. We may delight in what He
has done
what He does
and what He will do for us. (Hon. and Rev. B. W.
Nod
M. A.)
England¡¦s ideal future
and our duty with regard to it
In these words Malachi
proclaims to the Jews in Jerusalem the ideal future. Every nation lives in its
past. It derives inspiration for noble and worthy conduct
from the memory of
illustrious heroes whose names adorn its roll of fame. The Jew appealed to the
magnificent episodes in the earlier history of His people
when God had
signally and miraculously interposed on Israel¡¦s behalf. And He drew from this
historical source arguments for a renewed faith in God
for a purified religious
and national life. But every nation in whom there still throbs the pulse of a
vigorous life lives also in an ideal future. It believes in its individual
destiny. That destiny may not be clearly defined. It does not need clear
definition to exert its power in shaping the course of a nation¡¦s history. The
presence of a great idea is sufficient of itself to shed a guiding light upon a
nation¡¦s onward track. Israel possessed a great leading idea with respect to
its future
that
namely
of the coming of a Messiah. The nation held this idea
under different forms at different periods of its history. In the latest of the
prophets
in Malachi
there is a departure from the traditional picture of the
nation¡¦s future. Malachi no longer speaks of the coming of an earth-born
prince. He speaks of a heaven-born Messenger
who should carry into effect the
covenant long established between Jehovah and His people. The ¡§Messenger of the
covenant
¡¨ who should ¡§sit as a Refiner and Purifier of silver
¡¨ who should
separate the evil from the good; who should
like a glorious sun new risen upon
the world with healing in his beams
bring new life and invigoration to all
earnest souls
to all who feared the name of God. The moment in the nation¡¦s
history which this verse brings before us is that when it is face to face with
its apparently destined future
as that future is disclosed by the inspired
voice of Malachi. The purpose for which the prophet draws his picture is
that
he may rouse the conscience of the different classes of the people; and lead
them to reconsider seriously
and in God¡¦s sight
their national
religious
and domestic duties. He derives from his contemplation of the ideal future of
his nation an incentive for present action. Let us draw from a contemplation of
the near future of our own country a motive and stimulus for present guidance
and action.
1. Contrast Malachi¡¦s vision of the future of Israel with the ideal
future of our own country. What is the mightiest force at present working in
our national life? It is the progress of popular government
the rule of the
country by the people of the country. The nineteenth century was the age of the
growth of democratic institutions
of the spread of democratic ideas. This is
the one grand force in our national life which contains within itself
inexhaustible energies
the capacity for almost unlimited development. Nothing
can successfully oppose its course. The tide of popular development will sweep
forward. It is destined to attain vaster proportions. Shall we
as religious
God-fearing men
loving our country and humanity
caring for posterity
fail to
recognise in this tendency of our age the summons of God to renewed
earnestness
to intensified zeal? Shall we say that these vast political
movements and issues have no voice for our conscience
no bearing on our
Christian duty and Christian faith? The great Hebrew prophet Malachi rebukes
us.
2. Look at our duty as Christian men
as Christian workers
in the
light of the political destiny of our country. We should--
Did Jesus come again
What manner of personage
would He be did He condescend to appear among us? Should we know Him merely by
His bearing and character? We must believe that
as in Judea of old
Christ
would meet men with all consideration and courtesy. All
or almost all
the
good manners which we have among us--courtesies
refinements
self-restraint
mutual respect--we owe to Christ
to the influence of His example
and to that
Bible which testifies of Him. Conceive--but which of us can conceive?--His
perfect tenderness
patience
sympathy
graciousness
and grace
combined with
perfect strength
stateliness
even awful ness
when awe was needed. He alone
of all personages of whom history tells us
solved in His own words and deeds the most
difficult paradox of human character
--to be at once utterly conscious and
utterly unconscious of self; to combine with perfect self-sacrifice a perfect
self-assertion. He condescended
in His teaching of old
to the level of Jewish
knowledge at that time. We may therefore believe that He would condescend to
the level of our modern knowledge; and what would that involve? It would leave
Him
however
far less than Himself
at least Master of all that the human race
has thought or discovered in the last eighteen hundred years. He might speak as
never yet man spoke on English soil
might speak with an authority
originality
earnestness
as well as eloquence which might exercise a
fascination
purifying though painful as a ¡§refiner¡¦s fire¡¨; a fascination
equally attractive to those who wished to do right
and intolerable to those
who wished to do wrong. But how long would His influence last? As before
there
might come a day when His hearers and admirers would become fewer through
bigotry
envy
fickleness
cowardice
etc. And so the world
the religious
world as well as the rest
might let Him go His way
and vanish from the eyes
and minds of men
leaving behind little more than a regret that one so gifted
and so fascinating should have proved--so unsafe and so unsound a teacher. (Canon
Charles Kingsley.)
The Lord coming to His
temple
Here before us is a
twofold prediction. We have a forerunner of Christ announced in it
and then
Christ Himself.
I. A forerunner of
Christ.
1. His mission from God. ¡§Behold I will send My Messenger¡¨--there is
his Divine mission. Reference is to John the Baptist. Observe the honour it
puts upon him. It not only describes him as in the mind of God before his
appearance
and as specially appointed by God to his office
but it makes him
like his great Master Himself
the subject of prophecy
and an object of
expectation for ages to the Church. It was no personal pre-eminence that so
peculiarly distinguished this man. It was this--he was nearer to Christ; he
testified more plainly and fully of Him.
2. The work this forerunner was sent to perform. ¡§He shall prepare
the way before Me.¡¨ Jehu came
sustaining the character and doing the work of
the herald of Christ. The preaching of the Baptist should not only lead men to
expect the Messiah
but should prepare their hearts to receive Him. What was it
that first led some of you to seek Christ and welcome Him? Was it not a
consciousness of sin
a sense of God¡¦s anger
a dread of merited destruction?
Now examine
John¡¦s preaching
and you will find it calculated to produce just these
effects.
II. A prediction of
Christ.
1. The names applied to Christ. He is ¡§the Lord.¡¨ He comes to ¡§His
temple.¡¨ Thus the Holy Spirit asserts the Redeemer¡¦s Godhead. Another name is
applied to Christ
a lowly one ¡§the Messenger of the covenant.¡¨ He sustains in
relation to the covenant a similar character to that which John sustained
towards Himself. He is God¡¦s servant
sent into our world on an errand
connected with God¡¦s covenant of grace. The ¡§covenant¡¨ is the term applied by
Jehovah to the promises He has given His people to bless and save them. It
shows them the stability of these promises
and the fixed purpose of God to
perform them. And Christ is called the Messenger of this covenant
because He
it is who makes it known. He
in His human nature
is the instrument employed
by Jehovah in carrying it into effect. Observe the happy blending together in
these two names of the Redeemer¡¦s greatness and lowliness--the Lord of hosts
and yet a servant.
2. The appearing of Christ in our world. Mark the place--¡§His
temple.¡¨ Mark the predicted manner of His appearing--¡§suddenly.¡¨ Mark the
certainty of His advent--¡§He shall come.¡¨ Put three questions.
The advent of Christ
In the days of Malachi
there were many who
as the prophet says
even ¡§ wearied the Lord with their
words.¡¨ They said that God delighted in the wicked as much as in the good
and
denied that He would ever put any difference between them. ¡§Where
¡¨ said they
¡§is the God of judgment?¡¨ Notice--
I. What the
prophet says respecting our Lord¡¦s advent. Jesus is here described under the
most august titles. He is the Lord
the supreme Ruler and Governor of heaven
and earth. Yet
notwithstanding His equality with the Father as God
He assumes
the form of a servant
and comes as the Messenger of the covenant. In this
office He was an object of desire and delight long before He came into the
world. He was ¡§the Desire of all nations.¡¨ The circumstances of His advent were
minutely foretold.
1. He was to be preceded by a herald or messenger. This messenger was
John. The conduct of the Baptist excited universal attention
and very general
admiration.
2. The temple was the place to which especially He was to come.
3. His advent
though so long predicted
was to be sudden. The manner
of His appearance was so contrary to the worldly notions entertained respecting
Him that He was overlooked and even rejected as an impostor.
II. The effects
which the prophet describes as attending the advent of the Saviour.
1. As the characters of those to whom He was to come were very
various
so His advent was to prove discriminating. To discover the hidden
dispositions of the heart was one intent of our Lord¡¦s coming. This effect
still follows from the preaching of the Gospel. Men
though unconscious of it
them selves
are led to manifest their real characters
either as careless
Pharisees or atheistical scoffers or humble believers.
2. As a consequence of this discriminating effect of our Saviour¡¦s
advent it will also prove destructive. A refiner¡¦s fire will consume the dross
and fuller¡¦s soap will purge the filth of that to which it is applied. So will
our Lord eventually destroy many of those to whom He comes. Their sins are
aggravated by His coming.
3. There are many whom the advent of Christ will have the effect of
purifying. How comfortable it should be for those who are enduring trials of
affliction below
to know that while they are in the furnace the Refiner
Himself sitteth over them
watching the process with all due solicitude
and
taking care that they shall lose nothing but their dross. Two questions.
The coming of Messiah
I. HIS FORERUNNER.
John was to ¡§make ready a people prepared for the Lord
¡¨ and accordingly he
aroused their attention
he removed their prejudices
he awakened their
consciences.
he announced the nearness of Messiah¡¦s approach
proclaimed the
nature of His reign
convinced them of sin
and showed them that they stood in
need of a much greater salvation than deliverance from the Roman yoke.
II. His character.
He is described in three ways.
1. By His person--the Lord. The word used is Adonai
a name for God
but not an incommunicable one like the name of Jehovah; for we find it
sometimes applied to kings and superiors
It properly signifies authority and
dominion. How fully does this apply to Him. He must have had a previous claim
to dominion before He acquired this by obedience and suffering unto death.
2. By His office. ¡§The Messenger of the covenant.¡¨ Of the covenant of
grace. He is the Mediator
and the Surety
and the Messenger of this covenant
because He was not only to procure its blessings
but to bestow them.
¡§Messenger of the covenant¡¨ is His inferior title. It shows His infinite
condescension and grace. His
people will never suffer His glory to be injured by His goodness.
3. By the estimation in which He was holden. ¡§Whom ye delight in.¡¨
This will apply even to the carnal Jews
who did look for a Messiah. Much more
does it apply to spiritual Jews.; He was desired and delighted in by all the
people of God from the beginning.
III. His advent.
¡§Suddenly come to His temple.¡¨ He was now to come incarnate--¡§clothed in a body
like our own.¡¨ Two things are mentioned with regard to His advent: the one
regards the manner in which He was to come. Suddenly; which may mean both
¡§soon¡¨ and ¡§unawares.¡¨ The other regards the place to which He was to come
His
temple
Fulfilled by His presentation in the temple
and subsequent visits to
it
and teaching in it.
IV. The awfulness
of his coming. ¡§Who may abide?¡¨ Observe the awfulness--
1. In the occasional emanations and displays of His majesty.
2. In His detection of characters.
3. In the calamities which were to renew the rejection of Him.
V. The operations
of his grace. ¡§Like a refiner¡¦s fire
¡¨ etc. The fuller¡¦s soap takes stains out
without destroying the texture of the cloth
and gives it clearness and
freshness of appearance: and the refiner¡¦s fire severs the dross from the ore
and instead of injuring it
prepares it for circulation or use
and makes it
shine. Thus the Lord does with all the subjects of Divine grace. The
incarnation of our Saviour regards two classes of men. To the one it is
injurious
and to the other beneficial. (William Jay.)
The Lord¡¦s coming to His
temple
Taking John the Baptist as
only the precursor of the Lord Jesus
let us look at what is here predicated of
Him.
1. It is declared
¡§He shall suddenly come to His temple.¡¨ ¡§His¡¨
temple implies that He was Lord of the temple. The Jewish people anxiously
looked forward to His coming
but greatly mistook its object. They little thought
what a searcher of heart and correcter of wrong He would be.
2. Notice how He acted in respect to His temple when He came.
3. Notice the result of His coming as respects others.
Purifying through the
Lord¡¦s coming
I. Through his
first coming. The prophet Malachi announces the Saviour as one who on His
appearing will set on foot a great purifying among the people of Israel.
Christ¡¦s forerunner
John the Baptist
of whom our text speaks
alluded to
this. With the greatest earnestness he insisted on purification of heart. The
forgiveness of sins
through faith in Christ
is the great purification
through which we are presented pure and holy before God. Thus has Christ laid
in Himself a foundation for the purifying and sanctifying of our entire race.
II. Through His
daily
invisible coming the Lord exercises His purifying office for our
salvation. What Christ did in person at His first coming in the flesh He does
now by His Holy Spirit. Even the gold that has been purified needs a continuous
purifying. The stain of earthliness still clings too readily even to the pure
heart
the flesh always lusts against the spirit; and sin
so long as we tarry
in the body
is a foe always cleaving to and burdening us. Therefore does the
Lord come even to believing souls with many a crucible of affliction
in which
He again and again cleanses the gold from dross
that it may be fitted for His
temple. But He often exercises His purifying office inwardly by a gracious
coming to our hearts. He then comes with a specially blessed sense of His love
by which we are made ashamed and dissolve in love
such fire of love removing
impurity.
III. At His second
coming in glory the lord will destroy all anti-Christian ways
and all human
pride that raises itself against Him. The day of His first coming the people
might
well abide. He had veiled His glory under our weak flesh
Who would not
rather in the day of grace be purified by the inner fire of Christ¡¦s and the
Spirit¡¦s love and grace? To-day is the season of grace
to-morrow perhaps not.
(S. C. Kapff.)
Verse 2
But who may abide the day
of His coming?
The coming of the Lord
Look at this subject in
two points of view.
I. As a question
of solemn remonstrance. That the Lord has come
we know; that the Lord will
come
we profess to believe. The Scripture tells us much about that coming
but
leaves much that is uncertain. One thing is clear--the return is to be sudden.
But the very suddenness of that return teaches us that when the time comes for the Lord¡¦s
appearing
then the time of preparation is past. When our blessed Lord does
come suddenly
He returns for judgment; no nice distinctions will then be
drawn; party spirit must then sleep
and sleep for ever. Then shall it be seen
who have worshipped God in spirit and in truth. A difference
however
will be
made
absolute and relative--absolute to the right or to the left--relative
for we know there are degrees in glory. At the Lord¡¦s coming no secret shall be
hidden
the mere outward appearance of religion will be unavailing. Then we
shall learn who can abide His coming. There is a true and a false profession:
and then the false profession will be detected
the veil of hypocrisy will be
rent
and the mere formal hypocrite will be made known to all. It seems that
the very teacher may then be lost. Then search and see whether there is
Christian practice with the Christian profession. Those who have crowded
together to hear the Word of God will then be detected.
II. As an appeal to
our Christian confidence. The Apostle says that some can stand in that day.
Who? The real Christian alone: the man who has the Spirit of the living God
dwelling in his heart. What is your preparation for eternity? Faith in the Lord
Jesus Christ is essential. The man that stands now
stands by faith. The man
that does not trust Christ--I care not what his morality may be
I speak of him
as one weighed in the balances of eternity. (Bishop of Carlisle.)
Christ¡¦s second coming
I. Remind of some
particulars in the second coming of Christ.
1. The certainty of that event. That. Christ will come is a point on
which we are not left to doubt and conjecture. We have the plainest testimony
which words could give (Acts 1:11).
2. The manner of it. It will be glorious. The first coming was in all
outward meanness and humiliation. The second is to be ¡§the glorious appearing
of the great God and our Saviour.¡¨ His coming will be sudden.
3. The purpose and consequences of it. In His state of humiliation
Christ came as a Saviour; when He comes in glory
He will come as a Judge.
II. Answer the
solemn question of the text. ¡§Who may abide the day-of His coming? ¡§ Who will
be able to bear that severe and close inquiry which will then be made into our
lives and characters?
1. Those who will not be able to abide. Every open and habitual
sinner. The worldly man
who has made the world his god
and has set up his
idols in his heart. The hypocrite
who has the form of godliness
but is
without the power of it. The man who is self-righteous
and trusts to his own
merits and strength.
2. Those who will abide. The humble
penitent
believing Christian
a
character widely differing from every other. His ground of confidence in that
day will not be his innocence. He will claim an interest in the death of
Christ. His penitence
his uprightness
his secret striving with sin
his
useful life
his godly motives will be brought in evidence of the soundness and
reality of his faith. The Judge Himself will own him as a friend. (E.
Cooper.)
Before the Son of Man
The coming of Christ was
the trial-test of the world. Men never needed Him more; were never less
prepared to receive Him. It was the age of force. Society was not in a
condition to hear Christ favourably. We say the time was ripe for His coming.
As to necessity
yes; as to preparation
no. This was the ¡§historical¡¨ day of Christ. Few were
able to abide it. Few could stand when He appeared.
I. Rigid requirements
of His standard. Christ¡¦s coming is represented as attended by healing
comfort
and blessing. An era of peace and goodwill. But these results were not
immediate. God¡¦s promises are conditional. It is not easy to live by Christ¡¦s
standard. What is the nature of these requirements?
1. Consecration
which implies self-surrender. The doctrine of the
Cross is but faintly understood to-day.
2. Purity. Involves thought of the heart
speech
actions. Christ
raised the white standard of chastity higher than ever before.
3. Non-resistance. Must not give blow for blow. Overcome evil with
good.
4. Forgiveness of injury. We are actually to love our enemies. Must
pray for them
and do them good.
II. Duty of
standing before Him. Christ does not judge the world in person to-day. Does this through
the Gospel. Christ is the great refiner of men. It is our duty to stand before
Him.
1. Because He is the only perfect standard.
2. Because it is the only way to secure His favour.
3. Because by this we reach our proper place. To hate sin
and love
the sinning one--this is a Christlike prerogative. To separate the one from the
other--this is a Christlike work. To stand before the Son of Man implies--
Solemn questions
I. What did they
imply?
1. A false security. Jews thought they were ready for Messiah. The
prophet sees them to be self willed
dreaming of their own notions rather than
desiring God¡¦s truth. Religion only nominal.
2. The coming judgment.
3. A call to prepare.
II. They convince
us of--Indifference
worldliness
indolence
self-indulgence. We need God¡¦s
call
the prophet¡¦s appeal. Christ is coming: are we ready to meet Him? to be
examined and tested by Him?
III. How are we to
reply? We are at first struck dumb. None can stand. So says conscience
experience
observation
Scripture. Then the Gospel message of forgiveness and
salvation comes to us in the person of Him who was ¡§ presented in the temple¡¨
in our nature unto God
and is the Mediator between God and man
the man Christ
Jesus. In Jesus we find our refuge
our hope
our holiness
our home. (Homilist.)
The day of Christ¡¦s coming
I. There is a
momentous period for man to anticipate. The distinguishing characteristics of
that day are--
1. It will be a day on which the Lord will visibly and personally
appear in the presence of the universe.
2. It will be a day on which the Lord
by His coming
will perform
great and wondrous acts. Note the inevitable certainty of that day.
II. There is a
momentous question for man to consider. ¡§Who may abide the day of His coming?¡¨
1. This inquiry shall be vindicated. Our right to press and urge this
inquiry is as valid as was the right of the prophets of old. On what is our
right founded?
2. This inquiry is to be applied. To the infidel
the sensualist
the
worldling
the Pharisee
the hypocrite.
3. This inquiry is to be advised upon.
The solemnities of the
last great day
and the characters of those who are prepared for it
These words of the prophet
relate immediately to the first advent. They naturally lead our thoughts to the
second advent.
I. Lay before you
some of the solemnities of that great day.
1. The actual coming of the Lord
or His appearance in His human
nature.
2. The resurrection of the dead. The bodies of the unnumbered
millions
who through succeeding ages have inhabited the globe
wherever laid
or however consumed
will be restored to life
and reunited to their immortal
souls; that
with them
they may participate their happiness or misery.
3. The general judgment. ¡§The books shall be opened.¡¨ The book of the
Divine law: of God¡¦s omniscience; the book of life.
4. The assignment of an endless doom. Our departure into everlasting
punishment
or our admission into life eternal.
II. Consider the
important questions of the text.
1. The profane scoffer will not be able to abide that day.
2. Neither will that numerous class of persons
who live in the
habitual practice of open and flagrant sin
be able to stand before the Judge.
3. Nor that more respectable class who
nevertheless
are wholly
devoted to the world.
4. Nor those who pay attention to the duties of religion in a proud
and self-complacent spirit.
5. Nor those who acknowledge that salvation is of grace
but forget
that we are created in Christ Jesus ¡§unto good works.¡¨ They insist much on
faith
but are lamentably deficient in its fruits. Who then may abide the day
of His coming? Only the Christian who is worthy of the name. The man absolved
by the Judge is one who
condemned by himself for his transgressions
has
deeply repented and sought pardon on the ground of Christ¡¦s meritorious
obedience unto the death of the Cross
and works out his salvation with fear
and trembling. (John Natt
B. D.)
Divine manifestations
Scepticism abounded
but
no moral gloom could deaden the prophet¡¦s faith. God
whose authority was
contemned
would reveal Himself.
I. Divine
manifestations are searching. If God were fully to disclose Himself no flesh
could live. Veiled in material glory
His ancient saints found it difficult to
bear His appearing. The manifestation of God in Christ
though veiled in the
weakness of human flesh
was not easy to bear. Men felt it as a piercing light.
Corrupt and oppressive rulers
selfish and self-satisfied moralists
hypocritical religionists
and ruthless evil-doers could not bear His presence.
Some could bear His coming
and stand when He appeared. They were those--
1. Who were willing to feel
confess
and turn from their sinfulness.
2. Those who were sincerely waiting for His coming
as Simeon.
3. Those who had within them true faith
or spiritual receptiveness
as the Roman centurion and the Syrophenician woman. These could bear the most
searching day in the world¡¦s history
when the Lord appeared among men.
II. Divine
manifestations are separating. He is ¡§like a refiner¡¦s fire.¡¨ The appearance of
the Lord on the earth tested and separated men. Society was then like seething
molten metal. The good were revealed and refined; the bad
like recrement
were
separated from them
to be cast away. In His presence men discovered of what
sort they were
and ranged themselves for Him or against Him. As fire
His
Spirit still tests and separates men. Fire has been by several nations regarded
as a symbol of the Deity. As a Divine heat
enkindling shame
disgust
and
remorse at our failures and sins. He will not consume us
but our impurities.
1. That we have much dross in our natures need not lead us to
despair.
2. We should be thankful that God manifests Himself to us as a
refining heat.
3. We should seek for continued manifestations of God to our souls.
III. Divine manifestations
are cleansing or destroying. He is like ¡§fuller¡¦s soap.¡¨ The fuller¡¦s trade was
one well-known in Judaea. White garments were worn by the Jews on all festive
occasions; these the fuller cleansed from all stains
and whitened them by
rubbing them with a kind of marl. Creta limolia was probably the earth most
commonly used. His soap (borith) was a vegetable alkali obtained from numerous
plants
such as the Salsola huli
the Ajram
the Gilloo
and a heath which grows abundantly in the neighbourhood of Joppa. If a
garment could not bear the work of the fuller
it was destroyed by it. So the
coming of Christ would either cleanse men or hasten their destruction. Christ
Himself is the cleansing power. He can wash out the most inveterate stains.
None but He can cleanse men. If men will not bear His cleansing
their
corruptions will destroy them. All Divine manifestations are essentially the
same. There is one yet in the future for mankind. He who came in lowliness to
redeem men will come in awful majesty to fix their doom. Who may abide that day
of His coming? Who will be able to stand then? Only those who could have borne
His first advent--the contrite
the sincere
the believing. (W. Osborne
Lilley.)
The coming of Christ and
the purification of the Church
Thoughts suggested by the
day. As Christ was presented pure in the temple
so it should be our prayer
that by His blood and righteousness
and by the sanctifying power of His
Spirit
we may be presented unto God by Him
at the last day
pure and spotless.
We will consider--
I. The coming of
the Lord.
I. John the
Baptist prepared the way for that event--
2. Christ is called ¡¥ the messenger of the covenant
¡¨ because that
covenant began to be spoken by Him (Hebrews 2:3). He who was also the prince of the covenant
condescended to be
its messenger.
3. ¡§Whom ye delight in.¡¨ Christ is called ¡§the desire of all
nations.¡¨ (Haggai 2:7); but especially was He the desire of the Jewish nation
because
He was especially promised to them
and was to be one of themselves.
II. Who may abide
the day of his coming? Not the hypocrite
not the formalist
not the
self-righteous
not the lukewarm Laodicean
not the stony-ground hearer who is
ashamed when tribulation or persecution because of the Word ariseth; but he who
can endure the refiner¡¦s fire and the fuller¡¦s soap.
III. Christ shall
sit as a refiner and purifier of silver.
1. By this process He will purify His visible Church
by sifting and
testing it.
2. He will purify His own people by purging them.
3. The refiner of silver always sits
in order that he may watch the
silver carefully; for if it be a minute too long or too short a time in the
fire
the whole is spoiled
or at least injured. The sign which tells him when
the silver is fit for use is his being able to see in it his own image. All
this is a picture of the manner in which Christ purifies His people by trial
and of the end which He aims at. (Ven. Archd. Whately
M. A.)
The appearing of Christ
This truth was once
brought out in an unusual manner at a gathering of literary men. After some
general conversation it occurred to them to speculate how they would feel were
certain of the illustrious dead suddenly to appear in their midst. ¡§Think
¡¨
said one
¡§if Homer were to enter this room
or Dante! How should we meet them?
Or suppose
¡¨ exclaimed another
¡§Milton or Shakespeare were to come?¡¨ ¡§We
should stand in profound respect; we should honour the great seers and singers
of the past.¡¨ ¡§Ah
¡¨ added one who had not yet spoken
¡§and if Jesus Christ
stood before us? That would be wholly different
¡¨ was the instant and united
response; ¡§He is above all. We should fall down on our knees and do homage to
God¡¦s Son and man¡¦s Saviour.¡¨
The coming of Christ not
the same thing to all
Did you ever hear the
sound of the trumpets which are blown before the judges as they come to a city
to open the assizes? How different the feelings of the different people who
hear the sound. The innocent man against whom there is no charge hears them
unmoved. But the poor wretch waiting his trial in yonder cell
they tell him
the day of his trial has arrived. Soon he will stand at the bar of justice
and
receive his sentence. So will it be when Jesus comes; some will rejoice
but
others will be afraid to meet Him. (Home Magazine.)
Verse 3
And He shall sit as a
refiner and purifier of silver.
The refiner
The sons of Levi were the
authorised instructors of the Hebrew people. By fidelity to their special work
they fostered
by unfaithfulness they repressed the higher life of the Hebrews.
They became
therefore
the sure gauge of spiritual vigour among their
countrymen
or of their spiritual decay. Malachi speaks of the purification of
silver and gold
the two most precious metals of the earth
one or other
supplying a standard of value among all nations. Nor are these metals inapt
symbols of the Church of Christ. She has been the gold and silver of the earth.
The world is largely indebted to the Church. Whence does the Church derive her
value? From her relation to Christ. The first Church was gathered in loving
fealty to Christ. The disciples were His representatives. The bodily presence
of their Master and Lord was visible through them. The world can never be
converted by the world: Christ has given that great work to His Church. All the
fitness of His disciples for their grave and responsible duties is derived from
Him. Whatever defectiveness may appear
either in primitive or later Churches
the past nineteen centuries reveal the immense indebtedness of the world to the
Church. How frequently has it proved the ark of the nations
saving in its
sacred barque the seeds of future learning and civilisation. The material
social
intellectual and moral indebtedness of the world to the Church is too
large to be seen by any eye but that of Omniscience. But as the eye glances
over many periods of the Church¡¦s history
how painfully abundant the evidence
that the gold has become dim
and the most fine gold changed. The early
Christian Church soon showed a proneness to adulterate the pure truth of the
Gospel. See the influence of Mosaism and Gnosticism. How vast and varied the
corruptions which later ages reveal! There were the Allegorists
the
Sacerdotalists
the Schoolmen
the Ascetics and Mystics. There have been many
strange perversions of truth later than these. Popery has faced the light of
modem civilisation
not to be extinguished
as our fathers thought
but to
snatch a new lease of life. Nor are the followers of Romanism without powerful
auxiliaries in our own country. Confine our attention to the more obvious
evidences of the need of purification
chiefly in individual men. Among these
may be placed narrow and defective views of Divine truth. The Bible is more
praised than read. Doctrines and rites
alien to the Spirit of Christ¡¦s Gospel
have sprung up within the visible Church. Men have denied Christ in the name of
Christ. Their words are the words of the Master
but their spirit has been the
spirit of unbelief. There is proof of the need of purification in the
superstitious clinging to that which is old
merely because it is old; the vain
reverence for a dead past. A painful evidence of corruption is seen in
imperfect obedience to the truth. Is it not a fact
beyond all dispute
that
deficiency of truth
and deficiency in fidelity to it
have both proved serious
hindrances to the spread of Christ¡¦s kingdom on the earth? How
then
shall men
be purified from these? and by whom? The process of refining originates and is
directed by Christ Himself. By His permission times of sore trial came upon the
Church universal
or upon some branch of it; and the record of such times is
full of instruction and warning to men of other and less eventful days. Beneath
the eye of Christ each separate soul is cleansed. All power is His. He can
wisely adopt the means that
in His judgment
may be individually demanded in
separating the gold from the dross. The process of purifying the precious
metals demands undivided attention and protracted patience. Christ ¡§sits as the
refiner and purifier of silver.¡¨ He never relinquishes His fixed and steady
gaze upon the soul from which He seeks to remove the earthly dross. The refiner
of gold has certain tests by which he discovers the progress of his work. At
the beginning of real change
a deep orange colour spreads itself over the
molten mass in the cupel. At the next instant
a flickering wave passes rapidly
over the surface; and with increasing heat
the fiery mass becomes still
and
the colour pale and faint. Now
attention is deepened. Expectation is on
tiptoe. In another second the supreme moment may come. As the refiner¡¦s eye is
steadily fixed upon the burning metal
its surface suddenly becomes as a
burnished mirror
and flashes back his pictured face. Thus
also
does Christ
watch unweariedly. The process of change is very tardy
very reluctant. The
purpose for which this purification is sought demands a closing word. Before
the precious metals were put into the cupel
they were full of earthly
impurities; were unmalleable
inductile
comparatively useless. Being now
purged from all dross
they become the standard and representatives of a
nation¡¦s wealth. They are fashioned into coins bearing the king¡¦s image. They
are wrought into vessels fitted for the king¡¦s use. Thus it is also with
individual members of the Church of Christ. Before our purification
we were
but ill-adapted to serve our Divine Lord. The attempt to render this service
was marred by our lack
of holiness. After our purification
we are made ¡§vessels unto honour
sanctified and meet for the Master¡¦s use
prepared unto every good work.¡¨ There
is no duty
however humble
which we are not the better fitted to discharge.
There is no service
however noble
which we shall not the more acceptably
perform. What love is shown by Christ to His people in all this patient
watching and working for the removal of the dross of sin. Be patient
therefore
in your particular trial
of whatever sort it is. (J. Jackson
Goadby.)
The refiner¡¦s fire
The state of the Jewish
community in the days of Malachi was very similar to what it was when our Lord
appeared on the earth. A proud and self-righteous pharisaism had supplanted all
true spirituality of worship
and attention even to the outward forms of piety
had become little better than a name. Manifestly such a state of things could
not last
for unless some spiritual revolution took place
religion could not
go on much longer breathing an atmosphere of universal degeneracy. Malachi
tells the people of a coming Reformer. But what is the character of this
reformer to be? Will he be mild
gentle
indulgent; or will he go with just
severity to the root of all existing evils
and when he begins
will he make an
end of abuse and wrong? The prophet does not hesitate to clothe the coming One
with attributes of surpassing glory and awfulness
and to represent Him as
wielding prerogatives of the most scathing power. The figure in the text refers
to the process of refining gold. As the agency of fire separates
the dross
from the precious metal
by disintegrating the particles of which the mass is
composed; so Christ
not only in His capacity as the final Judge
but more
especially in His character as the present embodiment of truth
and as the
administrator of the Gospel kingdom
is subjecting the world to a searching
fiery test. Malachi deals with the relation of the truth of Christ
and Christ
Himself
to four aspects of human affairs.
I. The nation. The
difference between a nation defiled by error and sin
and a nation purged by
truth
is just this--the one is cursed and repulsive; the other is blessed and
delightsome. In every case where nations have attempted to rob God of His
prerogative of government
the action of the refiner¡¦s fire has revealed the
weakness of their corruptible systems.
II. The church.
When Christ refines the Church
He tests her government
her doctrine
and her
discipline. As to government; He is not indifferent to the way in which His
kingdom is administered. Order must here be reconciled with liberty. Christ is
most jealous of His truth. To say that false doctrine does not necessarily
bring with it moral corruption
is to say that the Christian¡¦s understanding is
useless as an element of mind. But is it so? As to discipline
there is no
Church that has not spots in her feasts of charity.
III. Society. In the
unrefined condition of society one man is preying upon another
every man
seeking his own pleasure and indulging his own passions
without the slightest
regard to the welfare of the community. But when society is refined
men ¡§speak
often one to another.¡¨ They take an interest in one another. It is not then
every man for himself
but every man considering what is best for all the rest.
No one who gravely considers the characteristics of our time will deny that
society stands much in need of purification.
IV. The soul. The
unrefined soul is addressed in Malachi 4:2. But the address to the renewed soul is given in Malachi 4:2. Our text goes deeper than nations
churches
or society: it
deals with the soul
its motives
opinions
desires. There are two classes of
souls in the world: those which will lose everything in the fire
even
themselves; and those which will lose something
but retain unimpaired the pure
gold of faith
and they themselves be saved. (Richard Smyth
D. D.)
Christ the refiner
Malachi¡¦s is the last
prophet-voice of the Old Testament times. Nothing is known concerning the man
Malachi. He is only a name. Our interest lies entirely in his message. The various
aspects under which Messiah is presented to us by the prophets bear direct
relation to the immediate needs of the people who are told about Him. Moses
gives us Messiah the Leader
who should permanently take his place. Isaiah
gives us Messiah as Sufferer
Conqueror
Comforter
matching the condition of
Israel as suffering and exiled. Daniel gives us Messiah the Prince
matching
the condition of the people as anticipating the restoration of their kingdom.
Malachi gives us Messiah the Refiner
matching the condition of the people
as
in a state of moral and religious degradation. It is well for us thus to be
reminded of the many-sidedness of Christ¡¦s adaptation to human needs. He is the
precise Christ needled in every age. And men are earnestly seeking
in this our
time
to find those sides and aspects of Christ and of Christianity which
precisely adapt to modern
social
and intellectual confusions. Whenever and
wherever Christ comes
He comes as the refiner and purifier.
I. Man is always
gathering dross. Metals are always found mingled with some sort of earthly
matter that must be burned or cleansed away. Everything man has to do with
gradually tarnishes
or collects the dust
or rusts
or corrupts. We are always
at work checking some gathering evil
or cleansing something that has become
foul. Whatever human scene you examine you will surely find this tendency to
deteriorate. Take the sphere of man¡¦s thinking. It is constantly observed that
the followers of all great philosophers
and teachers
and thought-leaders
always complicate and deteriorate the systems. They bring in the dirt and the
dross. Take the sphere of man¡¦s thinking. All the world over
and all the ages
through
you may see man recalled to pure principles
and soon losing them
again under the accumulating and debasing dross of ceremonies and
superstitions. Take the sphere of man¡¦s social relations Self-interest has
always proved to be the dross that gathers on and spoils the most perfect
social schemes man has ever devised. Take the sphere of man¡¦s personal life.
The noblest ideals are unattained
for the dross of self-indulgence soon
gathers
and in middle life men are content with low attainments. Read human
history
as epitomised for us in the Bible
and see how the dross is always collecting
and defiling. Try the Christian ages. The river of Christianity scarcely began
to flow before corruptions mingled with it. Our apostolical epistles tell of
errors and heresies and immoralities even prevailing and defiling in their day
and the next centuries are a painful record of ever-increasing degradations.
This would be but a depressing side of truth
if it had to stand quite alone.
There is
however
an answering truth.
II. God is always
seeking to refine the dross away. This is the meaning of God in history.
Precisely what He has always been doing is this--putting things straight;
clearing away evils; redeeming men from their follies and sins. He raises up
the Reformer
who will clear the gathered dross away
and liberate the pure
truth. He brings forth social leaders who can bravely resist the hurrying
tyranny. Everywhere
if men show us hastening corruption
we will show them God
staying the corrupting process. Refining
purifying
straining
washing
means
no less than this
God intends to present us at last faultless: and therefore
He must sit as the refiner and purifier
and get the dross away. This is
prominently illustrated in the mission of Christ as Messiah. Egyptian paintings
give us the refiner seated on his low stool
steadily maintaining the fires
with his blow-pipe
and all the while intently watching the silver in the
melting-pot
as it grows clearer in the heat. They give us the fuller
trampling the befouled garments
pounding them with his stout rod
and adding
the strong lye
the ¡§sope¡¨ that shall draw out all the stains. It is the figure
of God
manifested in Christ
and working His work of grace through Christ.
Christ was the refiner of His own age. The whip of small cords which drove the
dross out of the temple courts is typical of the work of His whole life. He is
the refiner of every age. Christ has stern hard work to do for His people.
Trying for Him. Trying for them. But most blessed. I have seen the man working
stripped to the waist
pouring forth streams of perspiration
at the great iron
furnaces; and I have not known which to sympathise with most
the man who
with
his long rod
was skilfully moving the iron mass in the great flames
getting
it free from all dross
and pure metal for the workers; or that mass of iron itself
burning in the flames
anti turned
now this way and now that
until every part
has been fully subjected to the fierce flame. It is hard for us to suffer
but
if we saw things aright
should we not think it even harder for Christ to make
us suffer? (Robert Tuck
B. A.)
The Divine refiner
In the preceding verse
Christ is a refiner¡¦s fire
but in this He is the refiner sitting and watching
the metal in the fire. His position suggests--
I. That His people
need refining. The dross of sin cleaves to the holiest. Nothing cleaves so
closely. Christ sees dross where we do not. We are not always willing that it
should be purged away when we do see it. The furnace is necessary.
II. That His people
are being refined. They find life a fiery ordeal. They often suffer more than
sinners. The heat is often very penetrating; sometimes very hard to bear with
patience. They do not always recognise the purpose of suffering. The process
goes on even when the results are not perceived. A refiner¡¦s furnace is the
truest simile of life.
III. That His people
are valuable in his eyes. He watches them in the furnace. He waits for their
perfection. They are silver
not common earth. Often despised by the world
they are highly esteemed by Him. The refiner only watches precious metals in
the fire. ¡§Reprobate silver¡¨ may be consumed
but every particle of pure metal
is preserved. Christ¡¦s people are precious to Him.
IV. That His people
will have their fiery trials tempered to their spiritual requirements. He aims
to make them spiritually perfect. He tempers the fire that He may separate ¡§the
sin that He hates from the soul that He loves.¡¨ He seeks not to give carnal
enjoyment
but purity. He
sitting to watch
manifests solicitude
patience
expectancy
and care.
V. That in the end
His people will be fully purified. His purpose shall he accomplished in them.
We often see the purification going on. The refiner uses the silver he
purifies. Perfect purity will bring perfect blessedness. Learn--
1. To trust more perfectly the watchful care of your Refiner under
your trials.
2. To estimate your trials by the amount of purifying they
accomplish.
3. To co-operate with the refiner in His efforts to purify you. (W.
Osborne Lilley.)
Christ the refiner
All the inventions
of two thousand years have not relieved the watcher at the furnace door from
the same anxieties and cares that rested ninon the alchemist of Israel over his
rude fireplace. What a beautiful figure the illustration furnishes of the plans
and providences of God in Christ Jesus. The world¡¦s great crucible is ever
before Him; the fire of His judgment ever burning beneath; the confused alloy
of humanity seething and bubbling within; the solvent and separator of His
truth cast ever and anon into the mass; the absorbent of the great unknown
ready to receive the refuse; the purified matter growing brighter and brighter;
but through all times and in all methods
the same watchful oversight
the same
touch of the practised hand
the same unfailing Godlike patience
directing and
ensuring final success. God who sent His only Son into the world
that He might
gather out of the world a peculiar people for Himself
did
by the sending of
His Son
set in action certain laws and orders that separated the evil from the
good
and that refined and purified the good; but God over all
and God
watching all
and God guiding all things
with untiring love and patience
kept
those laws and principles to their purposes
subjecting generation after
generation of men to the test of their action
regulating the nature and extent
of those tests
taking the purified mass out of the fire before it should be
consumed
and acting always upon the coming of that critical moment
when He
could see His own image in the mass under trial; sitting and watching
as
holding the great results in His own hands. There is a further side to the
illustration. A very beautiful phenomenon known as the fulguration of the
metal
attends the removal of the impurities from the silver. During the
earlier stages of the process
the film of oxide of lead
which has constantly
remained over the melted surface of the mass
is removed as rapidly as can be
and the colour of the metal is dark; but when the silver is almost clear of
impurities
the film of litharge upon its surface grows finer and finer
and a
succession of beautiful rings
of iridescent tints
form
one after another
until at last the film of oxide suddenly melts away and disappears
and the
brilliant surface of the silver flashes forth in all its purity and glory.
Under the old methods
the watcher did not disturb the crucible until that last
change came
--until he could see his own image on the glowing surface. Then his
work was done
and his purpose fulfilled. Think of the Lord Jesus under this
figure
and then read history again. There is the mass of humanity in the cupel
(shallow crucible) of God¡¦s law
and here
in this age
the dark film of sin is
over the whole surface
and there
in that age
a ray of light breaks
forth
and lights up history¡¦s pages
and another
and another
until a
continent is encircled; and in these last days the heavy film is breaking
and
the whole world is lighting up
because the end is drawing near; and in the
very last time the Son of Man shall put forth His power on the earth
and shall
call together His elect from the uttermost parts of the earth
and then the
darkness shall suddenly all break away
and the true light shine forth
and the
glory of the Lord shall cover the earth
and God¡¦s loving
patient watching
shall be over
and Christ shall see of the travail of His soul
and shall be
satisfied. Men grow weary under the test
and think the world has suffered
enough; but still God waits and watches for the true signs of purity
and sends
His trials and judgments
and throws in His solvents and absorbents
and looks
for His own image. When that appears
then the end cometh. (W. H. Lewis.)
The refiner¡¦s furnace
Everything used in the
erection of the Jewish temple was to be flawless and perfect. So it was with
the gifts to be presented. The temple was the earthly picture of heaven. Those
who enter there have come out of great tribulation
and been made white in the
blood of the Lamb. Thus Malachi prophesies: ¡§He shall sit as a refiner and
purifier of silver.¡¨ The purification of character is not an exceptional
experience. Christian melting is a common necessity. We are all made perfect
through suffering. There is a work to be done in us which involves pain and
trial. We are not only sculptors working on a building
we are sculptures with
living hearts and quivering nerves
to whom the furnace of trial is a needful
thing.
I. The Divine hand
which arranges the furnace. Fire is an element over which we have little
control. Over the tribulation of which it is here the symbol
we have less
control. We cannot set in order the moral procedure which issues in refined and
energised character. Directly men begin to choose their discipline they become
foolish and vain ascetics. At times we have all wished that there were no
griefs and trials here. The furnace needs ordering for us all. It is much to
know that our Father¡¦s hand is at work in all the events of our history.
II. The Divine eye
that watches the furnace. ¡§He sits.¡¨ A refiner of silver was asked
¡§Do you
sit?¡¨ ¡§Yes
¡¨ he replied
¡§I must keep my eye steadily fixed on the furnace
for
if the silver remains too long under the intense heat it is sure to be
damaged.¡¨ A beautiful illustration
completed when the silversmith added
¡§I
only know the exact instant when the purifying process is complete
by seeing my
own countenance in the silver.¡¨ Only when God sees His own image in the
children is He satisfied. Therefore the Father ¡§sits.¡¨ We see not the Invisible
Face behind the furnace
and we may be forgiven if we wonder at all the
mysteries of pain and grief.
III. The Divine end
in ordering the furnace. The beautiful Bible words have become hardened coins
of traditional usage. ¡§Sanctification¡¨ is one of the words that have become
conventionalised; it has been narrowed to a cheerless type of goodness.
Diversity of character gives room for manliness in spiritual life. Experience
does not alter the groundwork of human nature. But in all cases tribulation
works patience
and patience experience
and experience hope. The end which our
Father has in any special trial is often hidden from us. What furnace should we
ever have chosen for our selves? The end will explain it all. All is to the
praise of the glory of His grace
and never let us forget that His grace
involves our good
and His glory our happiness too.
IV. The Divine
grace that sustains us in the furnace. In most cases the furnace is gradually
heated. There are beginnings of sorrow and gradations of trial
so that God
gradually tempers our nature to the heat of the fire. Christian life is silver.
It is not wood and hay and stubble to be burned; it is silver to be purified. (W.
M. Statham.)
The refiner¡¦s fire
The process of refining is
in the text made to illustrate the work of Christ upon the heart of man.
I. The process.
One important truth is assumed
the inherent preciousness of man. Many things
are too worthless to pay for refining. When God undertakes to refine or purify
man
it is because of his intrinsic dignity and worth. The Scriptures nowhere
allow you to suppose that they treat man as an insignificant creature. And man
still bears about him in dimness and defacement the image of God. Our Saviour
takes great pains to impress us with the intrinsic and indestructible grandeur
of man. No word ever escapes His lips which tend to lower him in your esteem.
He sets His seal upon the infinite worth of man by taking his nature. Has not
sin made a great difference
and reduced
if not destroyed
the worth of man?
Yes
sin has made a great difference in his character
and in the part he has
played in the world
but it has made no difference in the intrinsic majesty and
grandeur of his being. He is still man. He has not fallen into lower rank of
creatureship
nor can he. If he could cease to be man
his shame and misery
would instantly leave him. Unworthy you are
but not worthless. If you were
worthless
he would not sit as a refiner and purifier of silver. He sees the
dross
and He sees the metal
and He does not cast away the metal because of
the dross
but He seeks to cast the dross out of the metal. ¡§He shall purify.¡¨
Here we see the great aim and purpose of the Gospel. So far as man¡¦s own life
and character are concerned
there is no other or higher end that the Gospel
can contemplate than this--our purification
In this the Gospel stands out
above and distinct from all other religious. Most of the religions of the world
have made men impure
and many of them have enjoined and required impurity as
an essential condition of salvation. The whole scheme of the Gospel is pervaded
by the idea of purity. Our religion is one which has for its supreme aim our
perfect holiness. Among the agencies
through means of which this purity is to
be accomplished
one is that of trial--trial as if by fire. One of the purposes
of affliction is to purify. To come out of the fire no better than we went into
it
shows a tenacity of evil in us which may well make us alarmed. It is an
unspeakable joy for the Christian to know that
as he must be tried in the
fire
he is to be tried under the eye and hand and heart of his Saviour. A
process over which He presides will be conducted with infinite wisdom. He knows
the nature of the evil which has to be separated. He alone knows the kind of
trials to send. There is no uniformity in the process of purification by which
Christ tests and refines His followers. Uniformity is the resource of routine
and ignorance or despotism. The discipline of a home is a better illustration
of the spirit in which Christ acts toward us than any other. In the family the
children can be looked at and treated in the light of their individual
peculiarities and needs. Each one of Christ¡¦s disciples is taken in hand by
Himself
and treated for what he is; and the Saviour makes no mistakes
He
sends no affliction without reason. It comes at its best time
in the best way
tarries only so long as it is needed
and until its purpose is accomplished.
Bodily affliction is not the only fire which Christ kindles for the
sanctification of His followers. His fires
and acids
and cleansing agencies
are innumerable.
II. Its purpose.
Sufferings have a purpose as well as a cause. The purpose of affliction
as
stated here
is
that its subjects ¡§may offer unto the Lord an offering in
righteousness.¡¨ As a rule
great service can only come out of great suffering.
The men of power and influence have been annealed in a furnace of trial of some
sort. Shrink not then from the fire
unless you would shrink from the service
too. Many a saint on earth is at this hour just purified
and ready to be
removed to the world where God keeps all His treasures. (Enoch Mellor
D. D.)
Christ the great
disciplinarian of regenerate souls
In this character
sitting
purifying
Christ recognises the worth of regenerate souls. He created
them by His power. He redeemed them by His love. His work is to them even more
valuable. As He burns up the dross of depravity
the souls become more precious
in His sight.
II. He employs
painful instrumentalities. Purifies by fire. The fire of truth. The fire of the
Spirit. The fire of trial; of personal and relative afflictions
the fire of
persecution. As nothing can purify the gold and the silver but fire
so nothing
but the Spirit of truth and the Spirit of providence can purge the human soul
of all the dross of sin.
III. He is
permanently engaged. ¡§He shall sit as a refiner and purifier.¡¨
IV. He aims at the
entire consecration to God. ¡§That they may offer unto God an offering of
righteousness.¡¨ The great work of every man is that of a priest. Man has to
¡§offer to the Lord
¡¨ his faculties
his being
all he has and is
and to do all
this in ¡§righteousness.¡¨ (Homilist.)
Christ¡¦s cleansing and
refining office in His Church
We may take these figures
as exhibiting the plain and manifest features of our Lord¡¦s mission to earth.
Still He is among us as fullers¡¦ soap
and as a refiner¡¦s fire
to cleanse and
to purify us all. Here is a great
continuous office of our Lord Jesus Christ.
Wherever He comes
He is always ¡§like a refiner¡¦s fire
and like fullers¡¦
soap.¡¨ Christ came expressly to establish sanctification
and seal a covenant
of which the very spirit was cleansing and purification by His blood
which
cleanseth from all sin. And Christ came also to give those purifying graces
without which no effectual cleansing can be carried on or maintained. It is in
all the graces
and motives
and desires
which the Holy Spirit generates
fosters
and matures in our too often half-reluctant hearts
that the great
Fuller and Refiner of the Word carries out the purpose
the great mission of
cleansing and refining for the perfecting of which He once graced the earth
and the nature of man
by His Incarnate Presence. What is the machinery by
which the Holy Refiner makes His power known? This refining is to be sought
for
and realised if we would have any usefulness
any ultimate profit
in it.
The Refiner is ever present
doing the refining work Himself. But He is as the
refiner¡¦s fire. In the furnace of some kind of affliction He refines
us--¡§Purging away the dross
taking away all the tin.¡¨ Trial is the refining
agent. The trial may bear relation not only to the outward
but also to the
inner life. Whether then Christ sit among us as a Fuller to cleanse
and as a
Refiner to purify
is a question which concerns us all. (Archdeacon Mildmay.)
Messiah¡¦s Kingdom
These last sentences from
Malachi¡¦s scroll are the specifications for the Kingdom of Christ. The
perfected outline of this character and kingdom
and the preparation needed for
the return of the Lord
is the theme of our chapter.
I. The completed
picture of the coming Messiah. Isaiah brings before us the Man of Sorrows. From
Isaiah onwards the lineaments seem to change
and the tints to deepen. We
become familiar with a martial step and warlike notes.
II. The Church is
to be purified and revived. This is a service which Christ will constantly
render and require of His Church
--their cleansing. It is
as it were
a
permanent employment. He is watching the crucibles and the scales
like the
silversmith at his bench. This is the answer to a question of the day
¡§Is God
doing the best He can for this world?¡¨ Controversy
the shaking and sifting of
small and great
of good and bad
may have its wholesome results when presided
over by the magisterial and gracious presence of Christ.
III. Society is to
be judged and transformed. ¡§And I will come near you to judgment.¡¨ When the
Lord comes into His temple He appears also as a swift witness against the
iniquities of society. He is a swift witness against evil-doers.
IV. Specifications
are made to the Church
society
and the individual
in regard to their
shortcomings. Men do not wish to be definite in their faith
or confine
themselves to commended and well-tested helps to a Divine life. But even an
imperfect comprehension of a great character yields more than an accurate
inventory of an insignificant Person or thing. Much is said about religion not
meeting the needs of men
but the truth is overlooked that men do not comply
with the conditions of Divine help. (William K. Campbell.)
Christ appearing among His
people
These words were spoken by
Malachi respecting Christ and John the Baptist. My present design is to notice
the characteristics of a genuine appearance of Christ among the people to
revive His work. Before Christ personally appeared among the Jews
He sent His
messenger to prepare the way. When Christ could appear to revive His work
He
still sends a messenger to prepare His way. Somebody will be stirred up to call
the attention of the people to the real condition of things
and the necessity
for a reformation among them. When this has been done
the Lord will suddenly
come to His temple. There is first the seeking after the Lord
then a calling
upon His name in earnest supplications for Him to revive His work
and then His
coming. The Lord¡¦s temple is His true Church on earth
of which the temple at
Jerusalem was only a type. What did Christ do when He first appeared among men?
Whenever He comes to revive His work in a place
there is sure to be great need
for it. Much is wrong
and there is need for reformation. When Christ comes
there will be a tremendous searching among the people. He began by upturning
the foundations of their hopes; all their self-righteous expectations. He
brought to bear upon them a searching ministry. He must try the metal to see
what dross is in it; he must see what chaff there is in the wheat
and then fan
it away. In such processes
certain classes of persons are peculiarly affected.
Christ took in hand chiefly the Pharisees
the leaders of the Church
and in a
most unsparing manner searched and tried them; reproved their errors
contradicted
them
and turned their false teaching completely upside down. So now Christ
does with all churches and all people. Whatever errors and misconceptions they
may be labouring under
He must set Himself to correct. If He find them with
superficial views of the spirituality of God¡¦s law
He must correct them. If
they have superficial views of the depravity of the human heart
they must be
corrected. He must cast light on all dark places
search the nooks and corners
and dispel all errors by the powerful light of truth. He begins by trying the
ministers. He needs to try them
that they may be instrumental in trying
others. He will search out the carnal professors of religion. These are divided
into various classes. Sometimes there are ambitious Persons in the Church. They
wish to be highly influential. Such persons are often searched out in such a
manner as greatly to expose and mortify them. Some are spiritually proud
or
have had a worldly pride; and they will all be searched out. When Christ comes to revive His work
He
will bring iniquity to light by searching
preaching
and the power of the Holy
Ghost. He will not only do this with the Church; He will also try the
congregation who are not professors of religion; and will bring a terrible
searching to bear upon them. If religion is to be revived
sin must be put
away. If sin is to be put away
there must be a conviction of sin; and if there
is to be a conviction of sin
searching must be applied. (C. G. Finney.)
Christ as a spiritual
reformer
The passage points to
Christ.
I. He is glorious.
This appears--
1. From the fact that a Divine messenger was sent to prepare the way
for Him.
2. From the description that is here given of Him; He revolutionises
the thoughts
the emotions
the aims
the habits of mankind.
II. He is
awe-inspiring. Unrenewed men will stand aghast and tremble in the presence of
this Reformer. He would subject their principles to the fiery test of His
heart-searching truth.
III. He is thorough.
¡§A refiner¡¦s fire.¡¨ ¡§Fullers¡¦ soap.¡¨ In Christ¡¦s reformation
everything that
is wrong
that is impure
is worked out of the human soul.
IV. He is
persistent. ¡§He shall sit
¡¨ etc. He is intent upon the work
and makes no
slight or passing business of it.
V. He is
successful. He will constitute for men one day a ¡§holy priesthood
¡¨ a
priesthood that will render to the Almighty offerings that are holy and
acceptable to him. (Homilist.)
Christ¡¦s purifying
presence
We do well to remember
with awe the day when Christ will come to be our Judge; and yet these words may
be understood of His coming near a man
or near His Church
in any way. God
never reveals Himself as closely approaching sinners
without putting them to
proof and trial
more or less resembling that by which metals are tried in the
fire. Those who
even in the day of His humiliation
knew or felt Him to be the
Son of God
and themselves sinners
trembled before Him
and would fain have
got away from His presence. They could not ¡§abide the day of His
coming.¡¨ That the prophet meant this kind of continued presence
and not simply
Christ¡¦s final coming
is probable for two reasons--
1. That he connects this purifying presence of our Lord with
the sending of His message to prepare the way before Him.
2. That he speaks of Him not as a destroyer
but as a refiner
especially of the priests. This seems to tell us of some unspeakable mercy of
His
to temper
as it were
the natural effects of His purity coming in contact
with us sinners
so as that He may be in us
and with us
a fire not to consume
but to refine. The God of Purity abides in man¡¦s nature
and it is not
destroyed
but purified. The first coming of our Lord to His new temple should
be connected with some great purification
which was to take place in His
Church
the consequence of which would be
that He would be fully reconciled to
His fallen people. Notice the ceremony connected with the purification of the
mother of Jesus. She brought two turtle-doves; one for a burnt offering
as an
acknowledgment of what sinners deserve at the hands of the Almighty; and she
acknowledged that her only hope of purification lay in her presenting a pure
offering. Note that other Israelitish mothers offered in acknowledgment and
expiation of the sin which they had communicated to the infant newly born; but
this holy mother needed not to make any such confession. Her offspring was pure
and untainted
and had no occasion to be expiated. The offering of the Blessed
Virgin differed infinitely from all others
in the worth of the first-born
whom she presented to her God. (Sermons by Contrib. to ¡§Tracts for
the Times. ¡¨)
Christianity as a
civilisation
It is necessary to think
of civilisation in two lights--the one as the condition of the individual
the
other as a power to influence others standing apart from its condition. What
mankind needs is
not simply an ideal picture of an elevated human life
but
also an agency that will rapidly cast men into the likeness of this ideal
picture. Individuals may have nearly reached the ideal manhood
but their
virtues have been unable to multiply themselves infinitely in the outer world.
History is dotted over with names of such piety as marked Aurelius
Cato
and
Xenophon. In seeking for a desirable civilisation
it is necessary for us to
find a culture that will overflow
a civilisation that possesses the aggressive
power and genius
that will open out
fanlike
and pass from one to many
incapable of rest as to labour
and as to its aspirations and conquests. Give
attention then to Christian character as a civilisation. Man is civilised when
all his faculties of mind and heart are active within their spheres
not
falling short of nature¡¦s law
nor going beyond it. Under ¡§faculties¡¨ must be
included conscience
and all the tender sentiments of friendship
love
sympathy
and religion
for
without these
a character may possess greatness
in many respects
but not that perfect blending which seems to give us the
perfect manhood. Edmund Burke says--¡§The spirit of civilisation is composed of
two parts
the spirit
of a gentleman
and the spirit of religion.¡¨ This is
only another way of informing us
that civilisation is a life lived in the
presence of man and of God. Paul describes the perfect gentleman in 1 Corinthians 13:1-13. In living up to such a picture we should all make a
grand approach to a civilised life. It has long been a custom of philosophic
minds to pass in silence any lessons of civilisation upon the pages of
Scripture
and patiently to seek
and deeply to love everything in Aristotle or
Plato. Permit me to assume that the truly Christian character is a highly
civilised character. Hence our second proposition
that Christianity possesses
in a large measure the power to influence those standing afar off. In order to
produce a universal manhood
we must find a truth that overflows
a philosophy
the opposite of egotism
a philosophy deeply altruistic. A religion in which
one good man becomes ten good men is the only one that will offer society hope.
Now the grand attribute of Christ and His method is this--living for others. If
there is one sentence which
more than others
may express the genius of this
Christ
it is this: His was a goodness that rolled outward
a love whose rays
like those of the sun
darted away from itself. In the world of morals
Christianity is a love which from one heart moves outward and contemplates
nothing less than shining upon each face that is seen
or shall be seen walking
the paths in this vale. No Christ-like soul will consent to walk along through
life
or to heaven
without wishing to drag all society with it to the sublime
destiny. Above all other systems Christianity is an aggressive civilisation.
Let us now defend Christianity against some parts of its history. It does not
argue against a sentiment that men have erred as to what path it should follow.
Christ has stood so near the people
that they have wreathed the cross with
their infirmities at the very hour when they crowded round it to find their
salvation. And it is this nearness to the human heart which has made
Christianity drench with blood fields over which infidelity would have
whispered ¡§peace
¡¨ for religion has always been an active
powerful sentiment
and hence its errors have been as active as its truths. As love in a wrong
path
or itself wronged
may become an agony and a cruelty
but in its full
light and wisdom opens out into a paradise
so Christianity escaping from
errors of doctrine and practice
will either become the world¡¦s civilisation
or
else we must bow in sorrow and declare the generations to come to be utterly
without hope. Here
then
is a reform adequate in its truths and in its
motives. What detains it from its great mission? It waits simply for man. It
waits for the Church to escape from the letter which killeth to the spirit
which giveth life. It waits for the Christian throng to enter
not their
sanctuary only
but the world. (David Swing.)
Refining silver
The following description
of silver refining is given by Napier:--¡§When the alloy is melted upon a cuppel
and the air blown upon it
the surface of the melted metals has a deep
orange-colour with a kind of flickering wave constantly passing over the
surface
caused by the combining of the oxygen with the impurity; and these being
blown off as the process proceeds
the heal is increased
because the nearer
purity the more heat is necessary to keep it in fusion; and in a little the
colour of the fused metal becomes lighter
the impurities only forming reddish
striae which continue to pass over the surface. At this stage the refiner
watches the operation
either standing or sitting
with the greatest
earnestness
until all the orange colour and shading disappears
and the metal
has the appearance of a highly-polished mirror
reflecting every object around
it
even the refiner
as he looks upon the mass of metal
may see himself as in
a looking-glass
and thus he can form a very correct judgment respecting the
purity of the metal If he is satisfied the fire is drawn
and the metal removed
from the furnace; but if not considered pure more lead is added and the process
is repeated.¡¨ All this is illustrative of the dealings of God with the
Christian
who
being put into the furnace of affliction
is often kept there
for a considerable time
the heat meanwhile increasing daily; but no sooner is
the end answered
and the drop of sin removed
than he is taken out of the
furnace reflecting the image of his Lord.
Melted over
I stood in the
foundry-yard. Great piles of iron
all ready for melting
were gathered there. I
noticed one heap of columns
broken
bent
split
shattered. I went into the
foundry. They were ¡§tapping¡¨ the furnace
and the molten metal flowed out in
one stream of fire
sending up a sputter of sparks
whiter than the stars. A
row of men
on whose swarthy faces fell the strange glare of the fire
stood a
little way from the furnace to catch the iron in ladles
and carry it off to be
run in the moulds. I knew these broken columns would some day be cast into the
furnace
softened
melted
to run out in a stream of fire
and be moulded again
in tall
shapely pillars. In no other way could they be of use. They must be
melted over. That very afternoon I saw a mother all bent and broken by affliction.
She had parted with an only child. Just the Sabbath before had the earth been
broken for that child¡¦s grave. I pitied that mother. How keenly her Saviour
felt for her. And yet
perhaps
the only way to reach some elements in that
mother¡¦s character
and change them
was through affliction. The character was
not worthless; far from it. It only needed melting over. O
the pain of that
furnace of suffering
its smart
its agony! But in just this way is character sometimes
made over
its qualities shaped into the strong
stately pillars sustaining the
interests of the Redeemer¡¦s kingdom. (J. A. Gordon.)
The refiner
The word translated
¡§soap¡¨ does not signify the article which is now called by that name; soap was
not known in the days of Malachi. It means rather what we call ¡§lye ¡§ It was
water impregnated with alkali drawn from the ashes of the vegetable known as
salt-wort. ¡§ He shall sit ¡§is not merely¡¨ pictorial
¡§to make the figure more
striking.¡¨ It is the position which the refiner must occupy
because the
process of purification is often protracted
and must always be watched with
unbroken attention. Recently a few ladies in Dublin
who are accustomed to meet
and read the Scriptures
and converse upon topics suggested
were reading this
third chapter of Malachi
when one of them observed
¡§There is something
remarkable in the expression in the third verse: ¡¥ He shall sit as a refiner
and purifier of silver.¡¨ ¡§They agreed that possibly it might be so
and one of
the ladies promised to call on a silversmith
and report to them what he said on
the subject. She went accordingly
and
without telling the object of her
errand
begged to know from him the process of refining silver
which he
described to her. ¡§But
sir
¡¨ she said
¡§do you sit while the process of
refining is going on?¡¨ ¡§Oh yes
madam
¡¨ replied the silversmith; ¡§I must sit
with my eye steadily fixed on the furnace
for if the time necessary for
refining be exceeded in the slightest degree the silver is sure to be injured.¡¨
At once she saw the beauty and the comfort
too
of the expression
¡§He shall
sit as a refiner and purifier of silver.¡¨ Christ sees it is needful to put His
children into the furnace
but He is seated by the side of it
His eye is
steadily on the work of purifying
and His wisdom and love are both engaged in
the best manner for them. Their trials do not come at random; the very hairs of
their head are all numbered. As the lady was leaving the shop the silversmith
called her back
and said he had still further to mention that he only knew the
process of purifying was complete by seeing his own image reflected in the
silver. Beautiful figure! When Christ sees His own image in His people His work
of purifying is accomplished. Then He instantly removes the crucible from the
fire. (Charles F. Deems
D. D.)
The mystery of suffering
As a matter of fact
suffering is the condition in which every human life is lived to a greater or
less degree. It embraces every portion of our nature
in pain of body
in
perplexity of mind
in great sorrow of heart
in conflict of will
in restlessness
of conscience
in desolation of spirit. Life always seems to me to be like our
Lord¡¦s life in this--it is a drawing nearer
nearer
nearer to Calvary
a more
and more living to conditions of suffering. And that which is an experience
with us is a universal
experience; we see it in every page that tells the
story of the past. We see it wherever we look round upon human life to-day. We
cannot help it; our own nature instinctively revolts against it. In the degree
in which we can see how the mystery of suffering can be reconciled with the
wisdom and the power and the love of God
in that degree we shall be helped to
be enduring for ourselves
and to be trustful about others. Suffering is not of
God; it is contrary to the ideal will of God. Tennyson says
¡§Man thinks he was
not made to die.¡¨ Man was no more made to suffer than he was made to die.
Suffering is the necessary result of the violation of law; that is
suffering
is of sin; and that it is by man¡¦s resistance to the loving guidance of God in
the laws of life that He has set for him
that all suffering has come into the
world. We are right to hate it; we are right to feel in the position of
absolute antagonism to it. We are right to do all we can to work it out of
human life. It is not of God
and although it is not of God
we are obliged to
admit this fact
that God foreknew how man would use the liberty wherewith He dowered him
that He
foreknew human sin
and that therefore He foreknew all the suffering that
follows from human sin
and yet foreknowing this He created man. How is this
reconciled with His love? Well
the answer which we are going to consider in
detail is this: Because God foreknew how out of suffering He could work
gracious purposes to men. Now
the first of these purposes is this: suffering
rightly borne purifies the character
and sets it free from sin. ¡§He shall sit
as a refiner and purifier of silver.¡¨ It is to this corrective aspect of
suffering that the writer of the Epistle to the Hebrews turns our attention in
the 12th chapter of the Epistle to the Hebrews. Let us look at the text itself
in its first application. Malachi is the last of the prophets. His prophecy
synchronises with the later days of the reign of Nehemiah. You remember what
the story is that is told us of the religious position of Judah and Israel in
Jerusalem towards the end of Nehemiah¡¦s reign. He had come first of all from
Babylon
and had rebuilt Jerusalem
and had re-organised its religious and its
social life; then he had gone back again to the court of his king
and an
interval of some years intervenes. During this time Israel falls into a
position of religious decay. It is quite true that she no longer reverts to
idolatry as before she had gone through the stern discipline of the Babylonish
Captivity. The temple services are maintained with regularity
but there is
gross carelessness in the ministries. The lame and the blind are brought near
to God
as if they were worthy offerings to be laid upon His altar. Side by
side with this careless
irreverent worship we see worldliness. The sons of
Israel are joining themselves in marriage alliances with the Gentile heathen
around; and then
of course
with this worldliness there is a great deal of
licentiousness of conduct
and the saddest feature about the whole thing is
this--that lies beneath the religious declension of the people--the corruption
of the priesthood. The national life is stained by that which is immoral in the
conduct of the priests in their daily life. And one thing is necessary
if the
national life is to be purified
if the worship which is to rise from the
Church of Israel is to be acceptable with God there must be purification of the
nation
and the necessary preliminary to that is the purification of the
priesthood. God says it shall come
and it shall come of suffering! Now
the
symbolism is quite clear
is it not? We see before us some refining furnace;
the fire is burning
and there is cast into that furnace ore mingled with dross
and precious metal. Under the action of the fire the dross is separated from
the metal. The refiner is watching the process of purification as it goes on.
At length the separation is complete. Here
then
is given to us the picture of
our life. As a matter of fact
we are in that fire; we have seen it. Its flames
are involving every portion of our being. But why? Well
the answer that is
given is this: for the purification of our nature. It is true
by the action of
suffering that purification is wrought. Just see how true this is in instances
with which we are familiar in the Bible. Recall to mind
for instance
the
story of the conversion of the woman who was a sinner. In her time of
indifference and thoughtlessness she is in the grip of her sin. Then she is
brought to the sorrow
the exquisite suffering of contrition. Or take
again
another instance just as simple. Look at that thief as he hangs at the side of
our Lord upon the Cross. He is in a position of absolute cleaving to his sin
and the words that he casts in the teeth of the Redeemer are words of reproach.
But as he hangs there upon the Cross
and draws nigh to the unseen world
he is
prepared to receive the ministry of Him who is on the Cross as the Refiner and
Purifier of silver
and he
too
through the pain of his body
through what he
is suffering materially in mind and heart and will
is turned to the Christ
and he who dies as the outcast of men is the first accepted penitent to enter
Paradise with Christ. And just as we see that it is through suffering
continually that men are first of all turned to God in initial conversion
so
it is in life. Of course
the real convert in the moment of his initial
conversion turns from his sin to God; but what the sin is from which he has to
turn is only gradually made clear to him as he goes through life
and not until
we are wholly conformed to the will of God in every detail of life and
character is the work of conversion complete
because until this is so we have
something from which to turn unto our God. Take two simple instances. There is
John as he comes before us naturally in the New Testament: Boanerges
the Son
of Thunder
said
¡§Lord
wilt Thou that we command fire to come down from
heaven and consume them even as Elias did?¡¨ Here we see him a Christian man but
with undisciplined zeal; he has not zeal tempered with charity. Look again at
him when he has reached extreme old age
and when he lies on his couch at
Ephesus
with Christians gathered round him; and this is the burden of his
teaching
¡§Little children
love one another.¡¨ Thus we see the fiery zeal of
the youth turned into the ripened tenderness of the dying saint. Take another
instance. Look at Simon Peter
what a strangely human character his is. At
first a man carried away by his enthusiasms. What a strange mixture there is in
his character. Who shall separate that strength from that weakness? Well
it is
done. You pass on
and you look at St. Peter in his own epistles
and there you
see quiet
firm strength without any bluster. He has acquired spiritual
stability. How? In the discipline of life. And so it is always. God casts us
into the furnace of affliction in order that He may deal with us just as that
one is dealt with--separates in us that which is displeasing to Himself from
that which is true to our true human nature
and He purifies us. We are not
surprised
therefore
when people say to us we are simply actors in our
religious life. It is not true. If it were true that all life was unified
that
man was either wholly of the world or wholly of God
then the criticism would
be true. But when a new higher nature is awakened within me
and becomes within
me a real yearning
yet the lower nature co-exists with it. How different a
person I am in one house to what I am in another. What a different person I am
when I am kneeling before God--it may be in His sanctuary--lifted up to the
worship of the Eucharist
and what I am when I find myself
well
in my own
home
it may be an hour afterwards. And yet I am not a hypocrite in either
case. The only thing is that there is brought clearly out before my eyes the
co-existence in my character of contradictory forces. There is dross and there
is gold. What do I want? To be my true
better self
which
God knows
I long
to be
and which I am not sustainedly. What do I want? Why
plainly
the
setting free of my higher self from all the power of this lower self. I want to
have the dross purged out of my character
I want to be purified within. And so
this truth comes before us: God has a loving purpose in consigning me to this
great world
to the conditions of life in which we live. It is the essential
condition
as far as we see
for the working out of us what is bad and what is
mean
and for the development within us of what is grand and beautiful and
true. Only
we must remember this
if this is the purpose of suffering
it is
not always an attained purpose. Certain characters very often deteriorate under
the discipline of suffering. But there is just one essential condition for the
metal which is cast into the furnace: if it is to be separated from the dross a
current of air must be always breathing over the living flame; if not
the
effect would be this
that instead of fire separating the metal from the ore it
would cause them to recombine
and under conditions of greater fixity
so that
it would be more difficult than it was before to purify it. Is not this a
wonderful parable? It is only when suffering is borne in God
only when
suffering is borne through the action within us of the Holy Spirit
the true
wind of God
that it is a purifying force within us. And so the first essential
condition of our being purified by suffering is this
that we give ourselves to
God up to the measure in which it is possible for us
in the submission to His
will
to endure suffering. Here
as ever
we are face to face with that mystery
of will. The issue in your character and mine of suffering conditions under
which we live our lives depends entirely on the posture of the will. If we
refuse to give up our wills to God our characters will deteriorate and not be
purified or beautified. And the second thing is this
is it not? Giving
ourselves thus up to God
if we are called on to live this life of suffering it
ought to be a life in which we have keen realisation of the conditions under
which we suffer in the thought of the Holy Spirit. Devotion to the Holy Ghost
is of great importance in every aspect of our Christian life
but it is of
emphatic importance in connection with our life of endurance of God¡¦s
discipline. If we try to meet it with fixity of resolution
with solidarity of purpose
we shall fail
but if we throw ourselves upon God to enable us by His Spirit to
endure the suffering which He lays upon us
in simple abandonment to the aid of
the Holy Ghost
we shall be able patiently to endure. Lastly
remember this.
All the time the process of the refining of the silver is going on the Refiner
is watching. So it is here. We suffer under His watching eye; we suffer for the
realisation of the dear Lord¡¦s loving purpose. He knows what we suffer. He has
a heart that can understand. He does give me more than pity
He can give me
sympathy
He bears with me so patiently
He comforts me so tenderly; in my rebellions He can forgive me so continuously.
Yes
Lord
yes; I can bear these fiery burdens. Within the very flames I will
look up and see Thy loving eye fixed on me
so that Thou knowest where I am
so
that Thou feelest for me
so that Thou givest me effectual help. (G. Body.)
An offering in righteousness--
An acceptable offering
This offering was
presented to God after the purification of His people had taken place. An
offering in righteousness.
I. Must have
nothing unrighteous associated with it. God hates robbery for burnt-offering.
Righteous getting must precede righteous giving. Trade morality is more
acceptable in God¡¦s sight than spurious temple munificence.
II. Must be
presented under the influence of right emotions. God regards the impulses that
stir the offerer more than the offering. It is for the offerer¡¦s sake that He
requires an offering. In presenting our offerings rightly
we need--
1. The promptings of love.
2. The inspiration of gratitude.
3. The ardour of consecration.
III. Must be offered
in a right way. God has made known the right way of approach to Himself.
1. The offering must be presented with sincerity. Insincerity is
unrighteous. The offering must be made to God
and not to win the favour
admiration
or interest of men.
2. The offering must be presented with humility. Self-righteousness
is unrighteousness.
3. The offering must be presented with faith in God¡¦s revelation of
Himself in Christ.
IV. Must be
proportionate to our possessions. For the rich to give as the poor is
unrighteous. Our possessions test us. Our willing offerings to God often
manifest the righteousness or unrighteousness of our characters as nothing else
does. God gives to us that we may have the joy of giving to Him.
V. WILL BE
ACCEPTABLE TO GOD.
1. The righteous offerings of His people are in accordance with His
own righteous nature.
2. They manifest the effects
of His grace upon their hearts.
3. They tend to spread the knowledge of His benevolence in the earth.
(W. Osborne Lilley.)
Verse 4
The days of old.
Past days
Every age has its peculiar
features. It is a duty to study the past. A knowledge of the past is often the
basis of safety in the present
and stability in the future.
I. The days of old
have created the present days. Time is a development
society a building
humanity a growth. No age can begin for itself. The past surrounds us
everywhere. ¡§You will find fibrous roots of this day¡¦s occurrences among the
dust of Cadmus and Trismegistus
of Tubalcain and Triptolemus: the top-roots of
them are with Father Adam himself and the cinders of Eve¡¦s first fire.¡¨--Carlyle.
You cannot understand the present without a knowledge of the past. This is true
politically
socially
and religiously. It is true of nations and of each
individual life.
II. The days of old
are full of examples worthy of imitation. ¡§History is philosophy teaching by
examples.
Bolingbroke. Jewish
history was full of examples that might have improved and instructed the
degenerate age in which Malachi lived. Good men¡¦s lives are for all time. They
are God¡¦s gifts to the world. They brighten the days of old and make them
influential. We can best discover what those days were by the lives of the men
who lived in them--
¡§There is a history in all men¡¦s lives
Figuring the nature of the times deceased.¡¨
--Shakespeare.
One age may imitate another. Biographies teach
more powerfully than philosophical deductions.
III. The days of old
are full of Divine revelations. God reveals Himself in many ways. Each age has
its own revelations. God revealed Himself to the world in past ages as He does
not now. The patriarchs
prophets
and apostles had visions of His glory denied
to men of this generation. God was manifested in the flesh in days of old.
Heaven seemed nearer to the earth then. God expects us to learn His will by His
acts in past times; by the working out of His purposes; by rewarding the
righteous and punishing the wicked; by revealing His self-sacrificing love in
the cross of Christ. The Bible is
God¡¦s record of the ¡§days of old.¡¨ We may learn what He will be
to us in our days by what He was to men then. His faithfulness
mercy
and
truth are written unmistakably on those wondrous days.
IV. The days of old
should be surpassed by the present days. Men should be more virtuous and pure
as the days roll on. Human experience should lead to advancement in holiness.
All departures from the past are not in the line of true progress. Some ages
have prided themselves in their onward movements when they have really been
retrograding. Sad when in the life of a nation
or in the life of a man
the
former days are
nobler than the present. Ages should be stepping stones for humanity to rise to
God. Every age should be an advance upon that which has preceded it. (W. Osborne
Lilley.)
Verse 5
I will come near to you to
Judgment.
A Divine threatening
God comes near to
men when He manifests Himself to their spiritual consciousness. He may do this
by His truth
by
the circumstances which He causes to surround them
or by the direct action of
His Spirit. He often comes near to men to enlighten
strengthen
help
and
save. He will come near to the wicked to judge and punish them. Observe--
I. This
threatening was uttered against workers of iniquity. Jerusalem abounded with
evil-doers. The wizards deluded the people with their arts
the adulterers
lurked in the twilight for their prey
false witnesses perjured themselves for
a bribe
the covetous robbed the hireling of his wages and defrauded the widow
the stranger
and the fatherless; all fear of God had departed from their eyes.
Against these His anger burned. The righteous had nothing to fear from His
judgments. His nearness was their joy. But the wicked would be filled with
terror as His presence flashed through all their sheltering deceits upon their
souls. Workers of iniquity may deny the existence of the God of judgment
but--
II. This
threatening was uttered by Him who is the sole Judge of all men. God alone has
the right to threaten judgment on men. He alone can judge men truly.
¡§What¡¦s done we partly can compute
But know not what¡¦s resisted.¡¨
--Burns.
He knows all. He is the
Creator of men. The evil-doer has violated His laws. His judgment will be just
final
and certainly executed. God threatens before He strikes. His judgment
will be individual. He will come near to every man
and
in the light of the
Divine presence
the evil of every man¡¦s life will be made manifest to himself
and he will feel the justice of the sentence passed upon him. The bitterness of
the doom of the lost will be their consciousness that they have merited it.
God¡¦s judgment on a man¡¦s completed life will fix his destiny God¡¦s eternal
supremacy
absolute knowledge
inflexible justice
and spotless holiness
constitute Him judge of all. It is He who threatens the sinner.
III. This
threatening will be certainly fulfilled. Obstinate evil workers may close their
ears to this solemn threatening
may make themselves callous by sophistries
may harden themselves in a false security by foolish infatuations
may abuse
the Divine mercy that is reluctant to punish
yet judgment will certainly come
upon them
to their dismay and destruction.
1. God¡¦s character ensures the fulfilment of this threatening.
2. History and human life are full of events that foreshadow its
fulfilment.
3. The consciences of men in all countries have
in a measure
anticipated its fulfilment.
4. The Scriptures constantly reiterate this threatening
and declare
that it shall be fulfilled.
5. The indication of God¡¦s administration over mankind requires its fulfilment.
As Luthardt says: ¡§Divine justice must have the last word. It has long suffered
men--suffered sinners--to speak. But the last word will be its own; and this
word must be a word of retaliation
for it is the word of a Judge.¡¨
IV. This
threatening should awaken reflection
repentance
and reformation. The peril of
the worker of evil is great and imminent. God¡¦s anger abides upon him. To the
eye of his Judge his sins have no covering. God
who has loved him with
infinite tenderness
must destroy him unless he repents. Repentance averts
judgment. A reformed life
by the power of the Gospel of Christ
is the only
means of escape from ruin. To those who turn from their iniquities God comes
near to comfort
not to condemn. (W. Osborne Lilley.)
God¡¦s law of judgment
There is no scene in
history more full of moving pathos than that of Christ weeping over Jerusalem.
The city was there right before His eyes in her matchless beauty. ¡§He who has
not seen the temple of Herod
¡¨ said a contemporary rabbi
¡§does not know what
beauty is.¡¨ The Roman Pliny said
¡§By far the most glorious city not of Judaea
only
but of the whole East
is Jerusalem.¡¨ But as our Lord had seen through
her religious ritual
so He sees through the splendour of her situation and her
buildings the moral horror beneath. ¡§O Jerusalem
Jerusalem! how often would I
have gathered thy children together even as a hen gathereth her chickens under
her wing
and ye would not. Behold your house is left unto you desolate.¡¨ And
so He pronounces over them that solemn prophecy of the degradation and
destruction that were to come. True it is that the prophecy of the destruction
of Jerusalem is also a prophecy of the moral end of all things. The destruction
of Jerusalem is a type of that judgment with which God shall at last and in the
end judge at their true moral value all human institutions. And the point is
that Jerusalem was destroyed because
she rejected Christ. That is an historical fact. I mean the temper which caused
her final destruction was simply the same as the temper which caused her to
reject Christ. She rejected Christ because of that narrow
self-satisfied
Jewish pride which refused to allow her to admit the larger light. And it all
happened naturally: you can read it in the pages of the modem historian--it all
happened by natural laws
natural sequences. And yet it is--as in the mind of
our Lord
so to the imagination of all time--the very type of what we mean by a
Divine judgment upon a nation for her sin. I believe this in particular is our
intellectual vocation and duty to-day
to realise that natural laws are God¡¦s
methods
and that it is not the less but rather the more His working
because
He works by ordinary sequences
and by what we call natural causes in the
government of men as of the world. The old idea of a Divine judgment was of
something arbitrary
violent
disconnected; a favourite type for judgment was
an earthquake
because an earthquake is something which cannot be put into any
connection with any works of men. God forbid that we should deny that there are
judgments of this kind. If we admit evidence
which we ought to do
we must
admit there have been miraculous acts of God
but this is not the normal way in
which God acts. What we have to learn is that God is the God of order and of
law
and that because He proceeds by natural law it is not less God
the moral
Governor of the world
who is at work among us. A disease is a judgment
because it springs from our vices. We are continually confronted with it: we
see it; perhaps at the particular moment we may see it with special emphasis.
Diseases follow our vices
our lusts. The duty of four piety in this present
day is to be taught by God to see into the hand of God
to search out what are
the methods by which these things happen
to seek to stanch the sources of the
evil
but always to recognise that as the source is moral so the only true and
vital remedies. Our piety lies in recognising this. There are natural judgments
that spring from moral causes; these are God¡¦s judgments. ¡§Providence
¡¨ a cynic
remarks
¡§is to be observed generally on the side of the strongest battalions.¡¨
Perfectly true! But the moral qualities of nations and of individuals have a
remarkable power
as shown by history
to strengthen or to weaken the battalion
in the long run. History is full of these things. We know the temper of the
French aristocracy at the birth of the French Revolution. Carlyle has described
it to us in a spirit which is really prophetic. We know their moral blindness
we know their selfishness
and we know the result. The French Revolution was no
less a Divine judgment upon the aristocracy
upon the Church
because the
instruments of it were very often reckless and godless and wicked men! There is
no country which has for the traveller a greater pathos at the present day than
Spain. And why? Because everywhere we see amid great natural beauty the traces
of the Divine judgment. There is in the present nothing to stir any hope
any
feeling of a prospect or of a future for that nation
but yet the very soil is
strewn with the marks and the memory of great civilisation. We ask
¡§Why did
she fall? ¡§ And the history is written
it was for moral qualities that she
fell. They are discoverable; you can put your finger upon them and mark them in
the pages of history. No doubt the world as it is at present presents to us no
complete picture of the moral government of God
but at the end we know we
shall see that God¡¦s government has detailed for each particular institution
as for each particular individual
a judgment according to righteousness and
truth. When human history is wound up there shall be none who can fail to
recognise that God is a God of judgment. But for the present it is not so. The
eyes of those who believe in God are strained to see some indication of His
moral government
and find it hard to trace them in the facts of the world.
Prophets and psalmists call out
¡§How long
O Lord
how long! How long
holy
and true?¡¨ but meanwhile the attitude of one who believes in the moral
government of God is always the same. He looks out upon the world
and he
expects God to govern not only individuals
but classes
nations
and
institutions by natural laws
but with moral results. This he expects
and I
ask you
Was there ever a time when there was greater need to remember this
than there is now? In the government of nations
in their relations to one
another
in the relations of classes
in the structure of society
in the
dealing with institutions
there is a tendency to banish morals from politics and
from commerce
and it seems as if
in spite of resistance
the tendency were
augmenting. But look out upon our commerce. Think of it! The unblushing
selfishness and unscrupulousness of the great companies and trusts
the
unblushing prevalence of bribery under the name of commission
the scandalous
lying and trickery in the details of retail trade! Well
then
if we believe in
the moral government of God
we need not be prophets
we need not be able to
discern with any certainty the tendency of things
or their outcome
but at
least we anticipate and expect that in proportion to the deep and widespread
character of this moral hollowness there will be judgment by natural law
a
judgment of God. The chief way in which we can do any good socially
or look out
with fresh eyes upon the great world outside us
is by attending to religion in
our own souls
no doubt. There
too
let us think how God comes near to us in
judgment. The penitent is ready to be punished. But you will say
¡§Of course
I
know unrepented sin has to be punished
but then I am forgiven. Do you talk of
punishing me
then?¡¨ Shall we never learn that lesson! Shall we always go on
thinking and talking as if to be forgiven meant to be let off
as if Christ¡¦s
atonement was suffering punishment in order that we might go scot-free? Christ
made Himself the sacrifice for our sins in order that He might bring us nearer
to God. We are indeed exempted from that which is the truest and deepest and
most terrible punishment--the alienation from God
and all that that involves
the gnawing worm
the devouring fire
which sin is--from that
indeed
He
delivers us in bringing us near to God
but from the punishment which lies in
bearing the consequences of sin there is not one word in the New Testament
which would lead you to suppose that you were to be exempted. On the contrary
He has brought you into that new relation to God in order that you may learn
how to bear it. For judgment
whether on nations or on individuals
need not be
final judgment. The great multitude of Divine judgments are His deepest and
most effective corrective agencies. Oh! let us learn that lesson. There is the
purpose of God the Father with regard to the world--a large purpose
an eternal
purpose
a wise purpose. There is only one hindrance to that purpose of God
but it is deep and wide and terrible: it is the hindrance of sin in
individuals
in classes
in nations. Sin may run to the point when it passes
beyond the Divine law
but God will do His utmost
and among His most effective
instruments are the instruments of judgments. Judgments are intended to purify.
The first thought of judgment or of misfortune ought
to the Christian
conscience
to be this
¡§It is given to cleanse me. God is visiting me. I am to
be purified. He punishes me because He has a purpose for me. To feel the hand
of God is to know that I am to be dealt with to my eternal enrichment and
blessedness.¡¨ (Charles Gore.)
Verses 6-12
Verse 6
For I am the Lord
I
change not; therefore
ye sons of Jacob are not consumed.
The Divine
unchangeableness
Here
in the land
of our exile
we must
live by faith
not by sight. Fear of Him who is the unchangeable Majesty is
more suitable for us whilst we are here
than to rejoice and be glad. We now
speak of that glorious and incomparable attribute
the Divine unchangeableness.
Changeableness is the note of all things here below: but He takes here to
Himself a more excellent name
and who can doubt that which He hath spoken?
When we seriously reflect on the unchangeableness of God
we find that He is
such a One
notwithstanding of all His infinite works and varieties of
dispensations that come from Him
as yet remains unchangeable. All things
remain in a circuit of being and not being; and even such things
when they
have a being
remain changeable. But
to speak of God¡¦s unchangeableness
it is
held forth that He is void of all variableness and corruption
and that He
in
the blessed purpose of His goodwill
is void of any shadow of changeableness;
He is unchangeable in His essence
in respect of this
that He is void of
and
cannot be subject to
corruption. That He is void of all alteration
and
infinitely perfect
proves sufficiently His being both sufficient
and
all-sufficient. Wherein can man be profitable to God? His perfection cannot be
found out. He is infinite in His omnipotency; in His understanding and
knowledge; and He is unchangeable in His love. Consider the advantages a
Christian may have
in this consideration
that God is unchangeable.
1. It is an excellent way to keep the grace of love growing in the
Christian.
2. It is an immutable and irresistible way to keep life in the
exercise of faith. O
for the faith to believe that God cannot nor will change
His immutable purpose.
3. The attaining to much Divine patience and submission
under all
sad dispensations.
4. We come to the distinct persuasion
that the ¡§gifts and calling of
God are without repentance.¡¨
5. The mortification of all things here below.
6. Much joy and satisfaction
for the heirs of God have strong
consolation. (A. Gray.)
The immutability of God
The highest
science
the loftiest speculation
the mightiest philosophy
which can ever
engage the attention of a child of God
is the name
the nature
the person
the work
the doings
and the existence of the great God whom he calls his
Father. There is something exceedingly improving to the mind in a contemplation
of the Divinity. No subject of contemplation will tend more to humble the mind
than thoughts of God. But while the subject humbles the mind it also expands
it. And the subject is eminently consolatory. In contemplating Christ
there is
a balm for every wound; in musing on the Father
a quietus for every grief
and
in the influence of the Holy Ghost
there is a balsam for every sore. One
subject we treat now--the immutability of the glorious Jehovah.
I. An unchanging
God.
1. He changes not in His essence. We cannot tell you the substance of
what we call God. Whatever it is
we call it His essence
and that essence
never changes. The substance of mortal things is ever changing. All creatures
change. But God is perpetually the same. He iS Spirit-pure
essential
ethereal
spirit--and therefore He
is immutable. His essence did not undergo any change when it was united with
the manhood.
2. He changes not in His attributes. Apply to His power
wisdom
justice
truth
goodness
love. Take any one thing that you can say of God now
and it may be said not only in the dark past
but in the bright future it shall
always remain the same.
3. He changes not in His plans. Has it ever been said that God began
to build but was not able to finish? God altereth not His plans. Why should He?
He is the All-Wise
and cannot have planned wrongly.
4. He changes not in His promises. I want immutable things; and I
find that I have immutable promises when I turn to the Bible.
5. He changes not in His threatenings.
6. He changes not in the objects of His love--not only in His love
but in the objects of it.
II. The proof that
God is unchangeable. The very existence and being of a God seem to me to imply
immutability. An argument may be found in the fact of God¡¦s perfection. Another
in God¡¦s infinity. From the past we may gather proof. ¡§Hath He spoken
and hath
He not done it?¡¨
III. The persons to
whom this unchangeable god is a benefit. ¡§Sons of Jacob.¡¨
1. The sons of God¡¦s election.
2. Persons who enjoy peculiar rights and titles.
3. Men of peculiar manifestations.
4. Men of peculiar trials.
5. Men of peculiar character.
IV. The benefit
which the sons of Jacob receive from an unchanging God. ¡§Not consumed.¡¨ How can
man be consumed? In two ways. We might have been consumed in hell. We might
have been left to our own devices
and then where would you have been now?
Remember
then
that God is the same
whatever may be removed. There is one
place where change cannot put his finger; there is one Name on which mutability
can never be written; there is one heart that can never alter. That heart is
God¡¦s--that name is Love. (C. H. Spurgeon.)
God¡¦s immutable mercy the
refuge of His people
The Holy Spirit
by the
prophet
is here recalling the Jewish nation to a recollection of their
transgressions
and particularly with regard to God¡¦s own ordinances. In the
words before us there is vast consolation.
1. What Jehovah is in Himself. ¡§I change not.¡¨ It is the Lord Jesus
who is spoken of. He for whom John Baptist prepared the way. Our glorious Lord
stands recorded in this chapter as Jehovah
self-existent
one with the Father
and the Spirit. The immutability of Christ is a sweet truth. It is frequently
mentioned or referred to in Scripture.
2. His covenant
like Himself
is eternal. God¡¦s mind is eternal. He
who is so immutable in Himself
and in His own purposes
will do all His
pleasure
and His counsel shall stand. He sweetly speaks for the comfort and
peace of sinners
brought to the feet of Jesus. There is no possibility of
failure; His infinite wisdom has provided for every emergency; His infinite
foreknowledge foresees all the obstacles that ever did or ever will arise to
counteract His own plans; His infinite power is sure to carry His plans into
effect. God is as true in His threatenings as in His promises. This is
illustrated in the case of the Jewish nation. Whilst
however
these witnesses
stand before us
to teach us that God is faithful
let us remember that the God
who is thus faithful in His promises and in His threatenings has been pleased
also in His Word to give poor souls this blessed testimony--that the seed of
Jacob shall never seek His face in vain. (F. Silver.)
Of the immutability of God
I. The nature of
this divine attribute.
1. In respect of His essence
God is absolutely unchangeable
because
His being is necessary
and His essence self-existent.
2. In respect of His perfections God is absolutely unchangeable.
Concerning those perfections which flow necessarily from His essence
and
depend not on His will
this is self-evident; because whatever necessarily
flows from any cause or principle must likewise of necessity be as invariable
as the cause or principle from which it necessarily proceeds. Of this kind are
the power
the knowledge
the wisdom
and the other natural attributes of God.
Concerning those perfections
the exercise whereof depends upon His will; such
as justice
veracity
goodness
mercy
and all other moral perfections
the absolute immutability
of these is not
indeed
so obvious and self-evident; because it depends on the
unchangeableness
not only of His essence
but of His will also. But in a Being
who always knows what is right to be done
and can never possibly be deceived
the general will or intention must be unchangeable.
3. In the particular decrees and purposes of His will--in His laws
promises
and threatenings. Having all power and all knowledge
He can never
resolve upon anything which shall be either not possible or not reasonable to
be accomplished. All finite beings are frequently forced to change their
designs
because they find it impossible to finish what they began
or unreasonable
to pursue their first intention. But in God these things have no place. He is
unchangeable in His decrees and purposes
because
having all things in His
power
and comprehending all things in His foreknowledge
He can by no force be
overruled
by no surprise or unexpected accident be prevented. In His laws God
is unchangeable
because they are always founded on the same immutable reason
the eternal differences of good and evil
the original nature of things
and
universal equity; and they always tend to the same regular end
the order and
happiness of the whole creation. In His covenants or promises God is
unchangeable. Because they are founded upon such grounds as cannot be altered;
even upon the original
fixed
and permanent designs and intentions of all-wise
providence. In His threatenings God is unchangeable
that is to say
in such
threatenings as are not merely personal. Because
as His love to virtue and
goodness is unalterable
so His hatred to vice is irreconcilable. And also
because these threatenings are often prophetic parts of the general scheme of
providence. Against this unchangeableness of God it may be urged
that
Scripture frequently represents Him as repenting and changing His purpose.
Reply
that while the declarations of the designs and purposes of God
which
are prophetic of the great events of providence
are in themselves absolutely
fixed and unalterable; those promises and threatenings which are merely
personal
either to any particular man or to any number of men
are always
conditional
because the wisdom of God thought fit to make these depend on the
behaviour of men; and the unchangeableness characterises the conditions.
II. Uses of this
discourse.
1. The unchangeableness of God is to good men at all times the
greatest possible security that they shall not finally fail to be happy.
2. The threatenings of Him whose nature and perfections are¡¨
unchangeable ought to be a perpetual terror to impenitent sinners.
3. The consideration of the mercy of Him who is unchangeable in His
perfections ought to be a constant encouragement to such as are truly penitent
and sincerely desirous to amend.
4. As unchangeableness is an excellency and perfection in God
so in
man
on the contrary
to change his opinion and manner of acting
when there is
just cause to do so
is one of his greatest commendations. Right and truth are
to be followed unchangeably
but when frail and fallible man finds he has erred
from what is true and right he must immediately return to it. (S. Clarke
D.
D.)
The immutability of God
Each property and
perfection of God¡¦s character and being produces its own peculiar effect upon
the renewed mind; and
although no one by searching can find out the Almighty
to perfection
yet the higher we soar in our contemplations of Him the more we
shall be excited to Wonder
love
and adore. The more we think upon God the
more shall we be constrained to exclaim
¡§How incomprehensible art Thou!¡¨ True
religion and pure and spiritual enjoyment do not proceed from the knowledge of
some of God¡¦s attributes only
nor from a merely speculative knowledge of all.
All
when experimentally and practically considered
are engaged in producing
piety and devotion in the human soul.
1. The immutability of God is not only revealed in the Bible
but is
discoverable by reason. Mutability implies cause. Where can we imagine there
exists a cause that can change the being or attributes of the Deity? He can
Himself never possess a desire to change. All possible
as well as all past
present
and future
sources of pleasure are always open to Him. And He is
independent for pleasure on all these. Does a power of producing change in God
exist in His Creatures? God
who is infinite
must be placed beyond the reach
of any external and finite cause. All are dependent on Him
but He is dependent
on none.
2. God¡¦s purposes are immutable. God foresees from the eternity past
all the transactions of the eternity to come. No sudden event
therefore
can
take Him unawares
and so subvert His designs. The plans of men may be
frustrated by a slight unforeseen accident
but there are no accidents with
¡§Him who worketh all things after the counsel of His own will.¡¨ Note the sense
in which the term ¡§repentance¡¨ is in Scripture applied to God. Divine
repentance conveys no notion of regret or dissatisfaction with His past
procedure
but it is expressive of God¡¦s determination to act in a different
manner than before towards those who by their change of conduct have rendered
necessary a different mode of procedure in the just administration of God¡¦s
moral government. The immutability of God¡¦s purposes may be inferred from the
nature of the end
to promote and
consummate which they are all but
means--even the manifestation of Jehovah¡¦s all-sufficiency. Let the
immutability of Jehovah¡¦s purpose in Christ Jesus encourage the Christian
labourer to ceaseless exertions in the work of the Lord.
3. God¡¦s Word is unchangeable. His moral law
threatenings
and
promises are alike unalterable. The Divine moral law
which is a transcript of
the character of God
¡§holy
just
and good
¡¨ is based upon eternal and
unchangeable principles of rectitude
co-existent with God Himself
and must
continue to exist as long as God exists. It is a great mistake to suppose that
the moral law has been abrogated by the Gospel. The work of Him who ¡§hath
magnified the law and made it honourable¡¨ is the sole ground of our restoration
to the favour of God and our title to heaven. The Gospel does not abolish the
believer¡¦s obligation to obey the law. To demolish the law would be to drag
away the pillar which supports the universal fabric of God¡¦s moral government.
God¡¦s threatenings too are unalterable. History
sacred and profane
teems with
fearful proofs of God¡¦s immutable hatred of sin
and determination not to let
it go unpunished. And the promises of God are immutable. They cannot fail of
fulfilment. But the fulfilment of the promises is conditional; and the
condition is as unalterable as the promise. There is an immutable promise
suitable for every circumstance of life. How well calculated is the
contemplation of the Divine immutability to promote confidence in God. Our
whole happiness depends upon the immutability of God. God is unchangeable
and
is therefore a firm and stable refuge to the believer. (J. James.)
The unchangeableness of
God
I. He is
unchangeable in His being. Change is impossible. Created and dependent beings
have the law of development and decay in them; imperfect beings may become more
¡¥or less perfect
but God
being separate from all these contingencies of
existence
cannot change.
2. He is unchangeable in His attributes. All the excellences that He
possesses He has possessed
and will possess
for ever. His creatures may
understand them more or less perfectly
but there is no change in them. There
can be no increase or diminution of His power
wisdom
holiness
love
etc.
3. He is unchangeable in His purposes. All His designs are from
eternity. His knowledge and power being perfect
and His will having no
variableness in it
there is no reason to suppose that any of His purposes have
altered
or that any of them can fail. Nothing can be a surprise to Him
nothing can thwart Him
and nothing can suggest an improvement in His plans.
When He is said to repent or turn aside from His purpose
it is to show us that
He is not an impassive spectator in human affairs
and that men may expect to
be truly blessed as they co-operate with Him in working out His holy will in
the earth. History testifies to God¡¦s unchangeableness. His purpose to bless
all men in Christ
like a thread of gold
runs through the ages.
4. He is unchangeable in the principles of His government. He reigns
over the whole universe with calm and equitable sway. Intellectual beings
myriads of ages before this race peopled the earth
found His reign the same as
we do now. He has ever been just and merciful
and ever will be. There can be
no fickleness
no uncertainty
with Him. Those who maintain their original
righteousness
or having sinned
accept of His mercy
are blessed
while those
who obstinately rebel perish.
5. His unchangeableness does not involve fatalism
impassiveness
or
necessity. His designs are the outcome of His wisdom and love; He feels deeply
the condition of His creatures
making them conscious of His favour according to
their obedience to His laws
and all His actions are free.
II. The Divine
inference drawn from this declaration. ¡§Therefore
¡¨ etc. At first sight this
inference is a strange one. He was threatening judgment; and the legitimate
inference that might have been drawn from His unchangeableness was that they
should be consumed. But instead of this He draws the opposite
reminding them
that it was because of His eternal purpose to keep the seed of Jacob alive upon
the earth
as a witness for Him for the world¡¦s sake
and not because of their
faithfulness
that they had been spared. They had often merited destruction
but in His unchanging mercy He had remembered His covenant with their fathers
and His purpose to bless the whole race through them
and so they were not
consumed. This is true of the Church now. Its sure resting-place is the
immutability of God. It will abide
however evils may abound
scepticism
darken
or superstition deprave. Consider
then--
1. That the continued existence of the Church does not arise from its
faithfulness
but from God¡¦s unchanging mercy and purpose.
2. That as the continued existence of the Church arises from God¡¦s
immutability
there should be in the minds of the members deep humility
fervent adoration
and ardent gratitude.
3. That as the permanence of the Church rests upon the immutability
of God
there should be
in the members
full confidence in its stability and
ultimate triumph.
4. That this should lead any who have wandered from the Church to
return to its privileges again.
5. That it should make the enemies of the Church consider the
futility of their attacks upon it
and repent of their folly. (W. Osborne
Lilley.)
Christ unchangeable
Christ is like the rock in
mid-ocean
that never changes
and braves every storm; feeling is like the
restless
shifting water that rolls round it. Christ is like the grand old
church tower standing foursquare to every wind
grey with centuries
a shelter
and a home to all who will come; feeling is like the bells in the tower
which
only ring on rare occasions
and easily change their tune; most demonstrative
on Sunday
and often still all the week when duty much needs their merry music.
Christ is like the sun
whose light
and heat are constant; feeling is like the
fleecy cloud
now beautiful as an angels wing
now a cold grey sky. Christ is
the tree of life
with root deep and the soil firmly gripped
lifting into the
sky leaf and blossom and branch;
feeling is a mere blossom
a child of the gay summer time
unfit for storm or
winter service. Christ is the guide who never leaves the traveller; feeling is
the torch sometimes burning brightly
but very liable to be blown out. He who
trusts mere feeling will trust a light most likely to have gone out when most
he needs guidance and comfort
while it will often burn brightly when it is
least needed.
The saints¡¦ final
perseverance secured by the immutability of God:--This
glorious doctrine stands--
1. On the perfections of Jehovah.
2. Upon the covenant work of the Lord Jesus.
3. Upon the faithfulness of the faithful and eternal Spirit.
Of the perfections of God
His immutability is here placed before us. This is declared to be the security
of the sons of Jacob.
I. ¡§the sons of
Jacob
¡¨ who are they? Some consider the passage as having regard to the literal
Jacob
the literal restoration and conversion of the Jews. These ¡§sons of
Jacob¡¨ are God¡¦s own sons. These are they who
clad in the garment of their
elder brother
do inherit all blessings. These are they that ¡§wrestle
¡¨ like
their father Jacob; they ¡§wrestle¡¨ in prayer with God. And they cannot live
without Him. More than that
these are the ¡§Israel
¡¨ and they ¡§prevail.¡¨ But
these ¡§sons of Jacob¡¨ have all the elements of destruction in them. They have
the indwelling corruption of their nature. It goes with them where they
go--stays with them where they stay. It defiles all that they touch
and all
that they think and all that they do. Besides the fountain of evil
there is
the actual evil--what a man does. Both in sin as a principle and in sin as an
act there is in a ¡§son of Jacob¡¨ the very element of his own destruction.
II. Though this is
so
they are not consumed. Though they are often placed in a hot fire;
sometimes so hot that faith seems almost to be gone. They are tried; their
grace¡¦s tried
their faith is tried
hope tried
love tried
every ¡§fruit of
the Spirit tried
¡¨ and yet they are not consumed.
III. Wherefore are
they not consumed? ¡§I am the Lord; I change not.¡¨ The description can only be
true of God Himself. He is unchangeable in His being
in His perfections
in
His faithfulness
in His justice
in His holiness
in His love. (J.
Harington Evans
M. A.)
The unchangeableness of
God manifested in the preservation of Israel
I. A fact stated.
¡§The sons of Jacob are not consumed.¡¨ This is a remarkable fact concerning the
literal descendants of the patriarch. It is true still.
II. The reason
assigned. ¡§I am the Lord; I change not.¡¨ Had it depended upon the nations of
the earth they would long ago have been consumed. God had entered into covenant
with them
and given them great and precious promises. And though they have
broken the covenant
the Lord on His part changes not. There is abundant
encouragement in this subject for every child of God. Abide in Him
and no
enemy shall be able to separate you from the love of God
which is in Christ
Jesus your Lord. (M. S. Alexander.)
The unchangeableness of
God
It is of very serious
consequence to man that he should make himself acquainted with the character of
God. In order to improve ourselves in this knowledge
it is useful to fix our
attention at times on particular qualities of the Divine character. By
carefully observing the different parts we shall become better acquainted with
the whole.
I. And first
let
us consider this quality itself; that is
the unchangeableness of God. In this
world every thing is changeable. It has pleased the Almighty that even the most
beautiful parts of the visible creation should be full of change. Days and
seasons follow and chase away each other. The leaf dies; the grass withers; the
flower fades; the mountain falling cometh to nought
and the rock is removed
out of his place.¡¨ Man himself
who marks and mourns those changes
is as
changeable as the rest. The objects in which he takes delight
change: his
honours fade; his pleasures wither; his riches make to themselves wings and
flee away; his kinsfolk fail
and his familiar friends forget him. His body
changes: the strength of his youth is dried up; his beauty consumes away. His
mind changes: The desires of yesterday are not the desires of to-day; the
purposes of youth are abandoned in age. But while man varies
God is the same.
For what says the Psalmist? ¡§My days are like a shadow that declineth; and I am
withered like grass; but Thou
O Lord
shalt endure for ever; and Thy
remembrance unto all generations.¡¨ ¡§I am the Lord
and for that reason I change
not.¡¨ I am the Creator
and not the creature; God
and not man; therefore I
change not. Beside Me there is none other; all else is vanity of vanities; the
world passeth away
and the lust thereof; but I am supreme
self-existent
and
eternal
and My counsel
that shall stand. If
then
God is unchangeable
we
must remember that all His Divine perfections are unchangeable: His power
His
wisdom
His holiness
His goodness
change not. There is something so awful--so
unlike ourselves--in the idea of a Being placed far above all chance and change
and infirmity
that we should be terrified by the thought if we were not told
that the mercy of this great Being was as constant and enduring as His wisdom
His righteousness
and His power. But there is something else to be observed if
we would take a full view of this subject. The Christian dispensation teaches
us to study and know
not merely the character of God
but the character of God
in Christ. And it is in Him that the unchanging mercy of God shines forth with
the greatest lustre.
II. Having now
considered the unchangeableness of God in itself
let us consider what effects
ought to be produced on our minds by the contemplation of it. And I begin with
remarking that this doctrine of God¡¦s unchangeableness gives unspeakable value
to the holy Scriptures. It is the whole end and aim of the Scriptures to reveal
God to man. Now
if God were as changeable as man we could have no secure
reliance on this revelation. In that case the book of Scripture might be true
at one time and not at another. This is what actually happens among men. There
are few if any persons whose habits
or manners
or principles do not vary more
or less at different periods of life; nor is there any government which does
not more or less alter its laws from time to time. And
in such cases
new
descriptions of character
and new books of laws
become necessary. But God is
always the same; and therefore the Scriptures are always sure. The New
Testament has now been written nearly eighteen hundred years; and some parts of
the Old Testament three thousand. Yet the Bible is as faithful an account of
the Most High at this moment as at first; and it will remain so
if the world
should last even millions of years longer. Let us
therefore
with this sacred
book in our hands
consider more particularly what effect should be produced on
our minds by reflecting on the great truth delivered in the text
¡§I am the
Lord
I change not.¡¨
1. First
on the sinful and impenitent. By the sinful and impenitent
I mean not only those who live in gross sin or impiety
but those also whose
hearts are chiefly set on the things of this life
and not on the things of the
life to come. And in what words shall I describe the folly and danger of such
persons! I say
their folly
for
if God be unchanging
and every thing else
fickle and fleeting and delusive
how exquisite must be the folly of seeking
our chief good anywhere but in Him! How exquisite must be the folly of casting
ourselves
not on the favour of Him who can give steady and lasting happiness
but on the wretched friendship of things that perish in the using! These
miserable trifles
--which will certainly fail us in a few years
--which may
possibly fail us this very day
--these are our gods; and for the sake of these
we desert Him who
if we did but choose to trust Him
would be ¡§the strength of
our hearts
and our portion for ever.¡¨ If we saw a man building his house on a
quicksand we should be amazed at his stupidity; but how infinitely greater the
infatuation of an immortal creature who builds iris happiness on the passing
perishing objects of time and sense! That folly rises to the most perfect
madness when we consider that
if we have not God for our unchangeable friend
we must have Him for our unchangeable enemy. Once more I present you with the
offer of mercy and reconciliation. And remember that
if God is unchanging
you
must change
for there is no hope of a reconciliation with Him who is of purer
eyes than to behold iniquity
and who will by no means clear the guilty.
2. In hopes that this solemn warning may not have been entirely lost
I proceed
secondly
to apply our subject to those who are seriously alarmed
about their everlasting safety; but who
when they consider the greatness of
the sins they have committed
are apt to fear that for them there is no
forgiveness. But I would ask you this question: were you at this moment
with
your bodily eyes
to see your blessed Saviour extended on His Cross
offering
Himself a sacrifice for the sins of His enemies
could you doubt that His most
precious blood was able to wash away even your sins
however heavy and
numerous? If you could not doubt this
then recollect that Jesus Christ is the
same yesterday
to-day
and for ever.
3. In the third place
let me very shortly address those who are
really making devotional and practical religion the principal object of their
lives
and who humbly trust that
through the Divine blessing
they ale
gradually increasing in all godliness and Christian virtue. Such persons will
find their advantage in frequent meditation on the unchangeableness of God. If
they are in affliction or in distress of mind
this will be their hope and
stay; they will reflect that
though outward things alter
He in whom they have laid up their chief
hopes remains the same. (Christian Observer.)
Verse 7
Ye are gone away from Mine
ordinances.
Misused religious
privileges
In proportion to
the value and the importance of our privileges
is apt to be our negligence
our carelessness
in improving them. In religion
in morals
in everything
concerning man
it is in the season of calm
and amid the quietude of apparent
prosperity
that the foot is readiest to slip. It is melancholy to think how
little value men in general set on the ordinances of a pure religion. The
temporal benefits that are so profusely conferred on us by our Maker have each
and all of them a measure of alloy mixed up with them
so as to modify and
qualify their sweetness. Religion is the solitary one of His gifts that may be
characterised as sweet unmixed; and yet it is the one to which
by a great
majority of our race
the least value is attached. The text deals with a class
of persons who
enjoying the privileges of religion
derived no advantage from
them; and it intimates that the loss originated in a fault of their own.
I. Evils that are
calculated to render the ministrations of the Gospel profitless.
1. Irregular attendance on those ministrations. In theory we admit
that the worship of God is the most important business of life. Because it is a
preparation for eternity; it is labour in the interest and for the well-being
of an immortal soul
and our homage is a debt
a sacred
serious
solemn debt
we owe to the Divinity. Then zeal
regularity
precise punctuality in that
service
are of all things most important. Your services
it is true
have
nothing of merit about them; but it is also true that if you refuse them you
need not expect the blessing of God.
2. Love to the world
and a propensity to worldly thoughts. Who does
not know that
even while apparently engaged in the most sacred services
the
world
and the things of the world
occasionally pass over and darken our
spiritual perceptions? Who is there who has never mourned this and deplored it?
This tendency to carnal thoughts in the midst of religious-seeming services is
one of the most serious obstacles that stand in the way of our improvement from
a preached Gospel.
3. The pride of intellect
and a carping taste for literary
criticism. It were passing strange
indeed
if the music of soft words
the
grace of polished sentences
and all the blandishments of composition were
excluded from the pulpit
while on any other stage they are deemed needful to
success. But there is peril in it. It may lay a powerful temptation in the way
of men¡¦s souls. It leads to a sacrificing of substance for shadow. Men nowadays
must have the Gospel preached to them in their own particular fashion
or they
will not listen to the preaching of the Gospel at all. Remember
I beseech you
that the foolishness of God is wiser than men
and that the wisdom of God is
stronger than men.
4. The want of solemnity and reverence in the sanctuary. How little
we think
in general
of the society in which we are
or the nature of Divine
service
when we come up to the temple of the Lord.
5. The want of a spirit of prayer. The effect to be produced is altogether
dependent on Almighty power. Then how obvious it is that all our attendances on
these ordinances should be preluded by prayer! We know that of ourselves we
cannot profit. We know that God has told us how His blessing is to be obtained.
Shall not
then
the footstool of His throne be approached by us? Shall we not
ask that Divine strength may be perfected in our weakness? (W. Craig.)
Return unto Me
and I will return unto you.
God¡¦s charge and call to a
backsliding people
Three things contained in
these words
which well suit our times.
1. A charge or accusation brought by God against His professing
people. All sin is going away from God¡¦s ordinances
or a breach of His law. To
omit known duties
God construes as a commission of known sins.
2. A solemn exhortation backed by an alluring motive. God promises
mercy when He might execute judgment. Repentance is that which sets a creature
right again
with his face towards God
so that all his desires and
expectations are from Him. The motive is
God¡¦s return unto us. God is said to
return when He shows His face and favour
which sin has hid.
3. The people¡¦s reply. ¡§Wherein shall we return?¡¨ This was either in
words--¡§We are not conscious of guilt
show us wherein we have offended.¡¨ Or it
is the language of their hearts and lives.
I. Show where in
we have gone away from God as a professing people and land.
1. We have gone away from His truth. As to the generality of
professors in the land
they scarce know what are the foundations of the
Gospel
or what are the pillars of the reformation.
2. We are gone away from His worship. Now families professing
godliness are prayerless
and there is a weariness of ordinances.
3. We are gone away from our trust and confidence in God. This is a
complaint every one may bring against himself.
4. We are gone away from God in conversation. Faith is nothing
without fruit
nor Gospel truth without Gospel holiness. Are thy thoughts
spiritual
thy speech savoury
thy mind and disposition heavenly
and thy
outward behaviour without offence?
II. How must our
return to him be?
1. With deep humiliation. Sense of sin will beget sorrow and shame
for it. When God touches the heart
sin will become the greatest burden we ever
felt.
2. With real reformation. God¡¦s anger is increased by mock returns.
It is one thing to confess sin with our mouths
and another thing to cast it
out of our hearts.
3. It should be with an eye to the blood of Christ. No mercy is to be
expected but through the satisfaction and intercession of our Lord Jesus
Christ.
III. The blessing
which is in God¡¦s return to us. When God comes to a land or people
good comes
with Him.
1. He comes with grace and pardon.
2. He comes with grace to sanctify and renew.
3. He comes with power and strength to save and deliver.
4. He comes with love to delight in them.
IV. Why will God
return to us only in the way of our return to him? It does not suppose anything
meritorious in the obedience of the creature; nor yet that the blessings of
grace are suspended upon the condition of duty.
1. It is to justify His dispensations before men. Though duty be not
the ground of our claim
it is the warrant of our expectation and our hope.
2. He will slay presumption and self-confidence in His own people.
V. In whom this
vile frame mentioned in the text is found. This may serve by way of caution
and by way of trial. We speak as in the text when--
1. We rest in generals
in confessing sin before God. Sin is a sort
of packhorse upon which every burden is laid.
2. This frame prevails where there is a transferring sin upon others.
It is easy confessing other men¡¦s sins
but evangelical repentance begins at
home.
3. Men speak thus when they con fess some sins
but not the sin which
God aims at. We are all too partial with respect to ourselves.
4. To confess sin with a secret liking of it in the heart is a way of
saying
¡§Wherein shall I return?¡¨ It argues little to confess sin if thou dost
not part with it. Uses--
Necessity of our returning
to God
Whenever
in any respect
we have wandered away from the strait and narrow way which leadeth unto life
our Father in heaven does not at once leave us to ourselves
but in His tender
love and forbearance has recourse to various means whereby to bring us back to
Himself. This is plainly the case with individual Christians; perhaps it is the
condition of mankind universally. Our merciful Father offers checks and
warnings when He sees any generally prevailing tendency to depart from Him. If
in any Christian Church
people have become self-confident
neglectful of
ancient rules
scorning attention to moral duties
yet all the while exulting
in unreal feelings and fancies
as tokens of the Divine favour--when such
symptoms of corruption show themselves
it is a great mercy if our good God
by
any chastisements
warns us of our danger
and of the necessity of returning to
Him whilst yet we may. Jehovah sent this message of affectionate compassion to
His ancient people
¡§Return unto Me
and I will return unto you.¡¨ And it was to be expected that
they would gladly embrace so gracious an offer; that their only inquiry would
be in what way they could best prove the sincerity of their repentance. But no
such temper showed itself. Quite otherwise. They had done nothing to be ashamed
of. They said
--why may we not go on as we are; what need is there of
repentance or amendment? Jesus Christ pressed on all who would follow Him the
necessity of self-denial
that is
of doing and suffering what is painful and
unpleasant to us
out of love to Him. This we promised to do in our baptism. If
we have not led the rest of our lives according to that beginning
then we
should hear the voice of God saying to us
¡§Return unto Me
and I will return
unto you.¡¨ Return unto Me in all self-abasement and self-denial
and I will
return to you in those special gifts and graces which eminently mark the
presence of God¡¦s good Spirit. Whatever our condition in life may be
self-denial in matters of disposition and temper is so essential to the
Christian character that
if we have neglected it
we have indeed urgent need
to return to the Lord in this respect without delay. Any tendency to self will
is an evidence that ¡§the heart is not right with God.¡¨ In regard to the duty
or privilege
of prayer
we should ascertain for ourselves whether we have at
all wandered away from the Lord
and so need to return to Him in true
substantial amendment. There must be a real and hearty obedience
otherwise a
return is no return. It is not a matter of profession or of feeling or of know
ledge
but of absolute practice
of humble temper and humble practice. (Sermons
by Contrib. to ¡§Tracts for the Times.¡¨)
Coming to God by love or
by fear
Our life in this world is
in substance
a returning to God. When we were new-born we were set in the path
that leads to eternal life
and bidden to keep in it
and so return to God.
Few
if any
go straight onward; most of us are like wayward children
following the road for a while
then straying; anon recovering it
and then
with repentance
proceeding. So
all the life through
we are returning to God;
lapsing here and there; erring and straying like lost sheep; finding the way
back
we often wonder how; and so
as for our general direction
working a slow
course toward final safety
through the temptations and dangers of the track by
which we go. Often have Christians to check themselves
to deplore errors
and
to retrace heedless steps; they must do this when they see or feel that they
are out of the straight path. The text asks
¡§Wherein shall we return?¡¨ The
question suggests some thought on motives which may act to lead men back to
God. How shall they that are astray be brought home? If we grow lax
cold
and
hard
how shall we be recovered? There are two great motives that can keep men
near to God
and keep God¡¦s name in honour in the world. These two are love and
fear: the love of God for His mercy
the fear of God for His justice. Either of
these may save a man; either may keep a race alive and strong. With the heart
we lay fast hold on God as the Father and the Saviour. God calls Himself our
Father; the word includes His act in giving us our being
His providence which
keeps
upholds
and blesses us day by day. God
as Creator
Ruler
and
Governor
asks of us our love. He reveals Himself as God our Saviour. The
symbol of the mighty all-constraining love is
and must ever be
the Cross. So
first the Lord draws us by love. There are
however
those in the world on whom
these considerations have no effect. In that case there remains one
and but
one
other motive to bring them to God; it is the lower motive of fear. Not
mere fear of punishment
nor the fear of suffering. It is the fear of
irreparable disaster
of everlasting loss. That men cannot face. That is the
dread of dreads. But there are those in whom there is no such dread; they do
not feel the love of God
they cannot be shaken by the fear of God. What other
motive can you name when both these fail? There is no answer. Destroy the
belief in the Almighty God as a Creator; with that vanishes the belief in
Almighty God as a providence. And when that is done the basis on which love
rests is gone also. Destroy the belief in the Lord Jesus Christ as the Redeemer
of the world
and with it vanish also the sense of sin
gratitude for
deliverance from its effects
and the love that has filled the hearts of men as
they meditated on the mercy of the Saviour
and the sweetness of the ¡§precious
blood of Christ.¡¨ Thus all ground for loving God is taken away. Cast out the
belief in eternal death
in perpetual penalty
in irreparable doom
and fear
must vanish. If there is no just God to requite me
whom is there to fear? What
will men do when fallen so low? Let us consider. Can love and fear die out of
the heart? Never. The love and fear of God can die; but love and fear of
something will remain. Toward what shall these direct themselves? When man will
no longer love God
he must come to loving himself; and when it comes to loving
himself
his main fear is lest
in that self-love
he should be interfered with
or balked. What would become of a world which had lost its own love and its
fear
which neither loved the Redeemer nor feared the pains of hell? One may be
pardoned for doubting whether such a world would be worth saving; and for
questioning whether it could be saved. We therefore teach
as most necessary
for these times
the love of God and the fear of God. (Morgan Dix.)
Encouragement for the
erring
God comes to His people.
His purpose is to refine
purify
and save; and to judge and witness against
wrong-doing. God¡¦s blessings are given conditionally. Observe--
I. The duty.
¡§Return unto me.¡¨
1. the words imply distance from God. The cause is sin. Sin deepens
and widens the difference between God and man. Sin put away
God and man are
one.
2. Return to a recognisation of neglected duty.
3. Return with a fixed purpose in all things to conform to God¡¦s
will.
II. The promise. ¡§I
will return unto you.¡¨
1. God¡¦s promises are many.
2. God¡¦s promises are great.
3. God¡¦s promises are precious.
4. God¡¦s promises are encouraging. To the weak
afflicted
troubled
unfortunate; yea
to the erring and sinful.
III. The
confirmation. ¡§Saith the Lord.¡¨
1. The authority. ¡§The Lord.¡¨
2. The confidence it inspires.
3. The action it should prompt. (Sketches of Four Hundred Sermons.)
The love-hunger in God¡¦s
heart
I. Jehovah¡¦s entreaty.
¡§Return unto Me.¡¨ Sin is not only departure from righteousness
but from God.
God is man¡¦s true sphere. Those who have lived in God may wander from Him.
Their sad condition may furnish reasons for their return; but the most powerful
is that God entreats them to do so. This should affect them deeply. For it
manifests--
1. His condescending pity.
2. Forbearing grace.
3. Unchanging love.
4. Willingness to receive them again into His favour.
Man¡¦s departure from God
grieves Him. In order that the wanderer may return he must--
II. Jehovah¡¦s
promise. ¡§I will return unto you.¡¨ God delights to fill the consciousness of
man with His presence. He reluctantly with draws Himself from the wanderer. In
God¡¦s return is all spiritual blessedness.
1. All wanderings are forgiven.
2. The soul is requickened into newness of life.
3. The evil effects of wandering are purged away.
4. The springs of a deep and immortal happiness are opened in the
soul.
5. The spirit is conscious of possessing its true and eternal rest.
God¡¦s return is dependent
upon the wanderer¡¦s return to Him. He cannot reveal Himself fully to those who
depart from His ways. He may warn them
chastise them
and strive with them
but they cannot know what His presence is to the obedient heart. (W. Osborne
Lilley.)
A last sermon
This text is an
exhortation to repentance.
I. An accusation.
¡§Ye have gone away.¡¨ They had gone off from God¡¦s ordinances
and had not kept
them. Law may be broken
either by omitting the good required or doing the
evils for bidden. They had long continued in these sins; ¡§from the days of your
fathers.¡¨
II. The
exhortation. ¡§Return
¡¨ etc. Notice the duty. Repentance toward God is necessary
to set the creature right again
and put him in his proper place and posture.
III. The rejoinder
of the people. ¡§Ye said
wherein shall we return?¡¨ It is not a serious
question
but a cavil. It suited the stout and stubborn genius of this people
who would not yield to anything that might infer their guilt. The exhortation
was lost upon them
as if they needed no repentance or reformation.
Doctrine--That a people who are apparently gone off from the ways of God are
not easily brought to a sight and sense of the necessity of returning to Him.
This point is true of mankind in general
of nations
and of particular
persons. Men set up a false happiness in their carnal estate. There is
something in us which is instead of Christ to us
when our affections take up
with present things. The commonness and continuance of sin takes away the
odiousness of it. Men many times return feignedly. A people professing
repentance in the general
when it cometh to particulars
wince and start. That
is but a notion of repentance
not a real exercise of it
when we profess to
return to God
and know not wherein we should return. Exhort to two things--
A Divine complaint and a
Divine invitation
I. A Divine
complaint against sinners. Three charges. Apostasy. Dishonesty. Insensibility.
II. A Divine
invitation to sinners. An invitation to return--
1. To Divine friendship.
2. To honest service.
¡§Bring all the tithes into
the storehouse.¡¨ If they accede
God promises--
Learn--
1. A man is a bad man
who withholds from God His due.
2. A bad man becomes good by surrendering his all to God.
3. The more good a man has in himself
the more good he has from the
universe. (Homilist.)
.
Will a man rob God?--
Robbery of God
The ordinance of God has
been that men should have certain things
on certain conditions
belonging to them
severally
as their own. But there has always been a mighty propensity to break
through this great law. We do not at all wonder at the laws in respect to
property among men. But here in the text is another kind of robbery
which does
sound strangely; of which many may be guilty
and little think of it. ¡§Rob
God
¡¨--who could ever think of a thing so monstrous? Yet it can be. In the next
words the assertion is made
¡§Ye have robbed Me.¡¨ All here on earth belongs to
God. It is in the midst of things belonging to Him that we are conversant
living and acting. If all belongs to God
then comes in the liability to commit
robbery against Him. It may be
that there shall be no general habitual sense
and acknowledgment of His sovereign claims; no feeling that all does so belong.
This is the comprehensive spirit and principle of the wrong toward Him
and
will go into many special forms; this state of mind is a general refusal to
acknowledge His law. It is taking
as it were
the whole ground at once from
God
and assuming a licence for every particular act and kind of robbery. Robbing
God is also permitting anything to have stronger power over us than His will.
There should be conscientious care to form a right honest judgment of what is
due
of what belongs to God. This guilt is incurred by misapplying to other
uses what is due to God. A few plain particulars may be specified of what we
cannot withhold from God without this guilt. One is
a very considerable
proportion of thought concerning Him. Fear
of the deepest
most solemn kind
is due to God. We have
naturally
an awe of power. There are other tributes
due
corresponding to what we may call the more attractive and gracious
attributes. Will a man refuse the gentler affection
--love
gratitude
humble
reliance? But we have to look further
at the full breadth of the declared law
of God: the comprehensive sum of His commands; a grand scheme of the dictates
of the Divine will
placed peremptorily before us
and abiding there as
permanently as our view of the purpose of the earth or the starry sky. Each and
every precept tells of something we may refuse Him
namely
the obedience; and
a temptation stands close by each. Some seem to ¡§rob God¡¨ of nearly all. And
with so determined a will
that there would seem but to need more precepts for
them to extend their injustice. Others think they must render something
but
that a partial tribute
and a small one
may suffice. Many appear to think that
if they do not rob men
there needs not much care about what is specially and
directly due to God. It is not for His own sake that God requires our homage
service
and obedience. It is for our sakes. Thus it will come to be found
that in robbing God
men iniquitously and fatally rob themselves. Name one
thing specially as due to God--the duty of promoting the cause of God in the
world. If each professed servant of God
and follower of Christ
could be
supposed to be asked
¡§Will you have your individual part set before you?¡¨ he must be a bold man
who
should instantly
and free from all apprehension
say
¡§Yes
I am sure of what
it will testify.¡¨ (John Foster.)
Robbery of God
It is possible
and the
sin has been perpetrated. God says to these Jews
¡§Ye have robbed Me.¡¨ In their
case it referred to the withholding of the tithes and offerings for the support
of the temple worship. This does not appertain to us; but it is not the only
way in which the sin can be committed. Robbery means taking either by fraud or
violence that which belongs to another
and appropriating it to our own use.
I. Apply this
charge of robbing God to a large portion of mankind
generally considered. To a
pious mind
it is an affecting and melancholy thing to consider what a
conspiracy seems ever going on to shut God out of His own world
to deprive Him
of His rights in the homage which is due to Him from His creatures. Atheism
robs Him of the glory of His existence; Deism
of the glory of His revelation;
Paganism
of the glory of His spirituality and perfections; Mohammedanism
of
His exclusive manifestation of Himself through the person and work of His own
Son
in regard to the purposes of His grace to our world; Judaism
of the glory
of His relationship to His only-begotten and well-beloved Son. So that we see
on a very large scale
God¡¦s rational creation continually robbing Him of His
glory. If we come from systems to men
we shall see that the same felony is
continually going on against Him
as the God of nature
providence
and
redemption. Is not man-worship one of the most striking characteristics of the
age in which we live? Looking abroad upon society
we see a felony continually
going on
in robbing God of His glory
and not giving Him the honour that in
all these things is due unto His name. In the sphere of religion
what robbery
of God there is in taking from Him His Sabbaths--taking them from religion
and
giving them to pleasure and business. Socinianism deprives Him of the glory of
the Divinity of His Son. Popery corrupts every thing in religion--raising up a
rival to God in the pope
a rival to the Bible in tradition
a rival to the
Saviour in priests
a rival to the Cross in the crucifix.
II. Apply this
charge of robbing god to particular classes.
1. It lies against the man who is living without personal
decided
spiritual religion
whose heart is not yet converted to God. The man who is
living without religion
that man is committing a wholesale robbery upon God.
He robs God of himself. He belongs to God. His body does
and he takes it from
Him
for sensuality
for vice
or for worldliness. He is robbing God of the
soul
with all its faculties. The intellect belongs to God; and yet
though
thousands of thoughts are streaming off from that man¡¦s mind day after day
none of these go to God. He is robbing God of his will
of his affections
etc.
An unconverted man robs God of his time. The same remark may be made as to
influence; as to property. It is God¡¦s world we live in
His ground we tread
upon
His sun that shines upon us
His rain that falls upon us
His creatures
that support us
His wool and cotton that clothe us; and we have no right to
use any of His creatures but in a way that
while it does us good
shall at the
same time glorify God.
III. Apply this
subject to professing christians. Can they stand altogether exempt from the
accusation? Ought not their life to be ¡§a whole burnt offering ¡§¡¥ to God? A
Christian ought to be a partaker of that religion which brings out a holy
morality in all the stations
occupations
and circumstances in which he is
placed. Are we then living for God or for ourselves? Are there no pulpit
robbers of God? None who
ins:cad of seeking God¡¦s glory
are seeking their
own? From the very nature of the ministerial office
self is the idol that we
are in danger of lifting up
if not in the place of God
yet side by side with
Him. What duty arising out of this subject shall I prescribe? Restitution.
Yield yourselves unto God. (John Angel James.)
Is it probable? Is it
possible? Can he be so disingenuous? What! rob a Father
a Friend
a
Benefactor! Can he be so daring? To rob a Being so high and sacred; and whose
glory so enhances the offence! Can he be so irrational
so desperate? Yet
says
God
¡§Ye have robbed Me.¡¨ And the charge falls on those who are to be found in
the house of God. Who has not robbed God of property? Our wealth is not our
own. We are only stewards. It always looks suspicious when a gentleman¡¦s
steward becomes very rich
and dies affluent. Substance is entrusted to its
occupiers
for certain purposes plainly laid down in the Scripture. Do you
discharge those claims? How much do some unjustly expend; in table-luxuries
in
costly dress
in magnificent furniture? Who has not robbed God of time? The
Sabbath. Our youth-time
so often squandered away in vanity
folly
and vice.
All our moments and opportunities are His: and He commands us to redeem the
time. Who has not robbed God of the heart? The fear
the confidence
the
gratitude
the attachment of the heart
we have transferred from the Creator
God over all
blessed for evermore. And may not the same be said of our
talents--whether learning
or the powers of conversation
or the retentiveness
of memory
or our influence over others? Let us not affect to deny the charge;
but let us repair to the footstool of mercy
and cry
¡§If Thou
Lord
shouldst
mark iniquity
O Lord
who shall stand?¡¨ (William Jay.)
Robbers
There are many more
robbers than the police know about. Men might be surprised to know that a
robber
sometimes
is concealed in their own breast. How wicked to rob a man
who has done us a kindness; but how much more so to rob a God who loves us with
everlasting love! As robbers of God
consider--
I. Atheists. Such
imagine there is no Creating-God; or if there be a God
that nobody can
discover anything about Him; and that there is no God-revealed religion. In a
picture gallery in London
I was shown a grand painting of a woman¡¦s face
and
asking the name of the artist
my friend replied
¡§Though it is a valuable
picture
the artist¡¦s name is unknown.¡¨ I show you a picture
the frame is made
of earth
and the picture is called life. See the carving of Divine genius in the
frame
and behold the lines of everlasting love in the picture! Can you say
that no intelligent mind ever conceived and no skilful hand ever formed the
leaf
the fruit
the rose of that picture? Some atheists admit there is a Mind
above that which is human
yet they say that the God-mind has no personal
sympathy with men. Many people live as if there were no God. Is it not
fashionable to do so? Would you be glad if there were no God? Think
God¡¦s
happiness is to bless you
and yet you rob Him of that joy.
II. Deists. One who
thinks there is a supreme God
but will not believe that He revealed Himself in
Christ Jesus. Deist
I ask you to behold God through Jesus. Do not rob Jesus of
His loving influence
which is meant to bless your own heart. Can you find any
other man who ever taught the world a better truth
or one who loved men more
than Jesus did? (William Birch.)
Robbing God
It is a fearful crime to
rob God
and yet it is done every day
and done by His professed friends as
well as by His open enemies. God is robbed whenever His requirements are
disregarded
whenever His rights are resisted
whenever the demands and
interests of His kingdom are neglected. Consider wherein God is robbed by His
people.
1. In the matter of affection. ¡§My son
give Me thy heart.¡¨ That is
the supreme offering.
2. In the matter of consecration. God will have the whole heart
life
gifts
or none.
3. In the matter of service. God¡¦s claim is absolute upon your time
influence
prayers
efforts
gifts
means
even in their potentiality.
4. In the matter of gratitude.
5. In tithes and offerings. (J. M. Sherwood.)
Living by theft
This is a kind of theft
which is very common. It does not affect the credit of those who are guilty of
it. It is practised by all unsaved persons
more or less. Indeed
this is one
of the principal means by which Satan keeps Christless persons at their ease.
It is most common amongst those of the unsaved who are respectable
moral
and
after their own fashion
religious people. Satan teaches them to live by theft.
He gets them to appropriate to themselves promises and hopes which do not
belong to them: and by means of this stolen property
he succeeds in keeping
them at their ease until he has ruined them for ever. (A. J. Gordon.)
Robbing God
The story about old
Stradivarius
the famous violin-maker
is suggestive. He said that if his hand
slackened in its work of making violins he would rob God
and leave a blank
instead of good violins. He said that even God would not make Antonio¡¦s violins
without Antonio. The truth has a wide application. It may be applied to every
life
and to every piece of work that any of us do. One is engaged in a
factory
one in a machine-shop
one in an office
one on a farm
one is at
school. One man is a physician
another is a lawyer
another a merchant
another a mechanic
another a minister. Whatever our work is
we cannot be
faithful to God unless we do it as well as we can. To slur is to do God¡¦s work
badly. To neglect is to rob God.
Robbing God
We do well to ask
ourselves at this time how far the words of God by Malachi apply
to our case:
¡§ Ye are cursed with a curse; for ye have robbed Me.¡¨. . . ¡§Wherein? In tithes
and offerings.¡¨ When we compare the millions upon millions lavished upon vain
display
costly feasts
extravagant dress
palatial dwellings
frivolous or
debasing amusements
and worse
on gambling
drinking
and unhallowed lusts
with the shabby pittance doled out for the Gospel at home and abroad
and then
ask ourselves how this must look in God¡¦s sight
is it any wonder that we are visited with hard
times? ¡§I tremble for my country (said Thomas Jefferson) when I remember that
God is just.¡¨ Nine hundred million dollars spent in one year for intoxicating
liquors; five and a half millions for missions (not church-support) at home and
abroad--that is
one hundred and sixty-four to one. The nine hundred millions
are not only squandered--they would better be cast into the sea than used as
they now are to ruin the souls and bodies of men
to destroy families
and to
plague the State. (F. H. Harling.)
The great robbery
Well
there can be no
doubt that man will do some very daring deeds. What magnificent things he is
capable of l He may not be much to look at
he may not fill a large space in
the landscape; but out of his heart and soul what deeds of heroism may come!
what feats of daring!--achievements that thrill the whole world and move the
heart of heaven! It is a precious heritage that we have in human biography.
Man
however
does not always employ his daring soul in the right way. What is
the most daring thing ever done? Why
surely it is here--in that a man will rob
God. And it is not true courage that leads him to do that; it is foolhardiness
with emphasis on the first syllable of the word. It is the coward who robs God
for he knows not what he is doing. But let us look at the question in a larger
sense
and see how we may be guilty of this terrible crime. All robbery of God
proceeds from our failure to acknowledge the one great fact of God¡¦s sovereignty. ¡§The earth
is the Lord¡¦s
and the fulness thereof; the world
and they that dwell
therein.¡¨ ¡§It is He that hath made us: we are His people
and the sheep of His
pasture.¡¨ In theory we acknowledge all this; but how about its practical
bearing on our everyday life? Have we a reverent and beautiful sense of God¡¦s
ownership
leading to the hallowing of all our thoughts
deeds
and
possessions? Do we ever talk about having money of our own
forgetting that
every mite of it is God¡¦s? We even go so far as to say that we ¡§will be master
in our own house
¡¨ forgetting that the house is not ours
and that ¡§One is our
Master
even Christ.¡¨ What we need
then
nowadays is a clearer sense of God¡¦s
sovereignty. We shall not tread so haughtily and boar ourselves so proudly
we
shall not be so careless and irreverent in our lives
when we realise vividly
the authority and presence of the Lord of all. What a terrible charge the
psalmist brings against certain people!--¡§God is not in all their thoughts.¡¨
Unless we are to rob God of His right
He must be in all our thoughts
the
great moral Force in all our work and duty
keeping us in fine integrity and
honour. In pleasure He must be ¡§the spring of all our joys
the life of our
delights
¡¨ and then we shall take no harm whatever pleasure we engage in. And
in sorrow He must be our first and only thought; then ¡§grief and fear and care
shall fly as clouds before the midday sun.¡¨ Will a man rob God? Yes
unless he
have the fear of God continually before him. ¡§The transgression of the wicked saith
within my heart
that there is no fear of God before his eyes.¡¨ That is the
message of every transgression ever committed. If men had the fear of God
before their eyes they would never sin against Him. An article in one of the
papers a while ago spoke of ¡§the degeneracy of wills.¡¨ In the olden time a man
began
his will thus: ¡§In the name of God
Amen.¡¨ But now we begin abruptly:
This is the last will and testament. It is not simply that we are short of
time
and cannot afford the roundabout phrases of a bygone day; it is that we
have not the sense of reverence in the measure that we ought to have it--we do
not live with the holy dread and mighty awe of the great old saints. Will a man
rob God? Yes
if he withhold his love
gratitude
and obedience from Him. These
great affections of the heart were bestowed upon us that they might be given to
some worthy object. Are they just to be spent upon a few inferior objects
around us
and to be denied to One in whom is all perfect excellence
goodness
and beauty? Does not the love of God to us call loudly for our love in return?
Does not all the mercy of the past lay irresistible claim to our fervent
gratitude? Does not every precept of God¡¦s law require our obedience? If we do
not give it
shall we not be robbing with the basest
boldest robbery Him to
whom our more than all is due? The man who robs God steals from himself. God
needs nothing of ours to make Him any richer; it is simply for our own sakes
that He makes the great demand. Give your little all
and the return shall be
in full measure
pressed down
and running over. Withhold
and you stand to
gain nothing and to lose all. (W. A. L. Taylor
B. A.)
Verse 10
Bring ye all the tithes
into the storehouse.
God¡¦s storehouse
The contents of this book
show that
in the time of Malachi
religion was in a very low condition. The
people robbed God by keeping back the tithes and offerings
and the priests
polluted God¡¦s altar. They offered to God what they dared not to have offered
to a human governor
and what a human governor would not have accepted at their
hands. And yet they seemed unconscious of the evil of their conduct. Sin so
blinds the eyes and blunts the conscience that men often do wrong
and scarcely
know that they are doing it. But sin brings its own punishment. God blighted
their fields and blemished their flocks
so that the land groaned beneath the
curse. And the only way to remove the evil was to turn from the evil of their
ways.
I. The origin and
meaning of tithes. It was the tenth part of the produce of the soft
and the
increase of the flock
or the income of the individual. It was not simply a
Mosaic institution. See Jacob¡¦s vow at Bethel. Abraham paid tithes to Melchizedek.
God seems to have instituted this claim
to be a constant acknowledgment on our
part of our dependence upon Him for all that we possess. God claims an absolute
ownership of the soil and all its produce
and He claimed this constant
acknowledgment of His ownership at the hands of men. Tithes were used at first
to maintain the ordinances of religion
and to supply the wants of the poor
the fatherless
and the widow
who have ever been the objects of God¡¦s care. In
addition to these tithes
there were also freewill offerings. Many of their own
free will
gave far beyond the minimum
stipulated. Perhaps it was never intended
even under the Jewish economy
that
the tithe should be exacted by force. It is evident that it was often withholden. The
tithe is certainly not to be exacted by law under the present economy. Yet
surely less cannot be expected of us than of the Jews. The earth is still the
Lord¡¦s
and He demands the same acknowledgment from us that He did from them.
It is God that sends sunshine and shower
and causes the seed to germinate and
spring up. Is God amply repaid
as the owner of the land
and for His toil
when you give Him the tenth
and that
perhaps
grudgingly? But it is not
simply your substance
but yourself
also
that belongs to God. You are not
your own. Then surely there ought to be an acknowledgment of His ownership.
Have you even tithed yourself for God? Where is the storehouse into which these
tithes are to be brought? Where is God¡¦s storehouse? The storehouse is just
where the tithes are needed. You need to tithe your time and thought for the
culture of your own heart and life
if they are to be as a well-kept garden
beautiful unto God. You need to tithe your time for the good of your family
if
your house is to be well ordered
and your children trained up in the nurture
and admonition of the Lord. You need to tithe your time
and thought
and
affection
to meet the claims of society--the ignorant and degraded around you
loudly call for help. The storehouse for your substance may be found in the homes of the widow
and the orphan
and the poor
and the destitute.
II. THE BLESSING
HERE PROMISED. Opening the windows has
no doubt
reference to sunshine and showers
which produce the harvest. But every good gift is from above
and
therefore
this expression may symbolise the way in which every blessing is bestowed upon
us. How easy it would be for God thus to pour down His blessing upon us till
there be not room enough to receive it. This is true of temporal blessing. It
is equally true in relation to the spiritual blessing. If we were to comply
with the conditions God has here named
how easy it would be for Him to fill
this house. This is especially true in relation to personal blessing. In Him
are all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge. You see then the way in which
God¡¦s blessing can be obtained. You shut heaven or you open it
by the attitude
you assume in relation to God. He will ultimately be to you what you persist in
being to Him. You may
too
in many ways
prevent or procure blessings for
others. (A. Clark.)
Bringing in the tithes
1. It is objected
that we are not Jews
and that the command is
therefore
obsolete. But the occasion of tithing
like that of the Lord¡¦s day
is found in permanent
unchanging facts
the glory of God and the needs of man.
The occasion for tithing is even more urgent to-day than of old
as the work of
religion is to be extended throughout the globe.
2. It is objected
that this law of tithing
like the laws concerning
sacrifice and circumcision
has been repealed. But this is not true. There is
not a syllable in the New Testament which
either directly or indirectly
repeals the law of the tithe.
3. It is objected
that every man is to give ¡§as he purposeth in his
heart
and as the Lord hath prospered him
¡¨ and this is a virtual repeal of the
tithe. On the contrary
it really confirms the principle of tithing. We are to
give by ¡§purpose¡¨; that is
deliberately
systematically--not according to whim
or accident.
4. It may be said
¡§I am not limited to a tenth
but
like Zaccheus
I may give half
or
like the apostles
all.¡¨ So much the better. There is no
objection to the rule. ¡§Thank-offerings were always commended.¡¨
5. The worst objection is
¡§I cannot afford it.¡¨ There is the real
obstacle--selfishness. But ¡§I want to save for old age.¡¨ Yes
and for eternity
too. Do not save for your children by robbing God. What shall it profit a man
if he gain the tithes
and lose his soul? (M.V. Crouse.)
Prove Me now herewith.
God put to the proof
Far higher than the
heavens are above the earth is our God above men; and yet He speaks to men
not
merely after the manner of men
so far as that manner is good
but often with a
tenderness
a gentleness
and a freedom of which many men are utterly incapable.
Here
to assist Nehemiah in the restoration of the worship of God
Malachi is
directed to say to the people
¡§Bring ye all the tithes into the storehouse . . . and prove
Me now herewith
¡¨ etc. The consecration of a tenth of the produce of property
and of toil is of earlier date than the establishment of the Mosaic economy.
The custom was adopted by Divine direction in the Levitical dispensation
and
was enforced by Divine commandments. God here complains of neglect with respect
to this said ordinance
which indicated a careless
undevout
and irreligious
spirit among the people; and on account of this
God had withheld His blessing
and smitten Israel with a curse. God¡¦s requirements are
in principle and
spirit
very similar in all ages
and the omissions
and defects
and faults of
the people of God are
in times even far distant from each other
not unlike.
1. God has ever connected the enjoyment and use of certain blessings
with the observance of His ordinances
and with obedience to His requirements.
We may trace the connection of obedience with our salvation. The obedience of
the children of Israel had nothing whatever to do with their election. In like
manner our obedience has nothing whatever to do with the provision made for our
redemption. I am born again
not because I have obeyed
but that I may obey. I
am pardoned and justified
not because I have obeyed
but that I may be in a
position to be trained for obedience. What has the obedience of a child to do
with his relation to his father? This obedience does not earn or procure
or in
any sense purchase and obtain our salvation
but it is the working out of that
salvation
so far as our experience and our inward consciousness and enjoyment
of that salvation are concerned. Let us therefore distinctly understand this at
starting. But look further
and look at certain institutions and ordinances.
Just as there is a close connection between the enjoyment of pardon
--the
deliverance of our souls from the dominion of sin
and the confession of our
sins to God
so there is a close connection between peace of mind
freedom from
care
and obedience evidenced in earnest
importunate
and continued
supplication.
2. Although God has thus connected blessedness with obedience
and
with the observance of His ordinances
the people of God have often neglected
them--neglected institutions founded for their benefit
and neglected Divine
precepts and prohibitions: and this neglect is traceable to various sources.
Sometimes neglect arises from ignorance. How can a man know the mind of God
concerning him
who does not search his Bible? But a man may read the Bible
and still be ignorant. Hearing you may not understand
and seeking you may not
find. Neglect arises from thoughtlessness and carelessness
and from indolence.
3. Such neglect often brings spiritual adversity
and sometimes
exposes to sore affliction. If we have not all the spiritual blessings which
God has promised
why are they not in our possession? The connection which God
has ordained between obedience and blessedness cannot be severed. Our spiritual
adversity
therefore
cannot be traceable to God. The cause can only be in
ourselves; and it will be often found in some neglect
--not in the commission
of something wrong
but in the omission of duties that we Christians think
lightly of. We have restrained prayer
therefore our anxiety and our unrest. We
have not acknowledged our sins
therefore our sense of guilt and our fear. We
have neglected the Scriptures
or forsaken the assembling of ourselves
together.
4. Our awaking to the knowledge that we have not all that God has
promised
should be immediately followed by searchings of heart. Here again the
cause must be in ourselves.
5. Now say that neglect is discovered
it should be instantly
followed by supplying the omission. Prove me--my love
my hand
my
faithfulness. All these omissions
by God¡¦s grace
and the grace of the Spirit
may be supplied. (Samuel Martin.)
Heaven¡¦s windows
Belief in a heaven has
been universal Material good descends from the material heaven. The visible
heavens are the type of the spiritual.
I. Windows are for
light. Heaven is filled with unsullied light. Its light falls upon the earth. It ever gleams
upon men in their benighted wanderings.
II. Windows are for
health. The atmosphere of heaven is pure. The inhabitants never say
¡§I am
sick.¡¨ Man¡¦s moral health on earth is from the heavenly influences that descend
upon him.
III. Windows are for
the interchange of sentiment
observation
and the glances of affection. The
inhabitants of heaven are interested in men. Men are penitent
angels rejoice.
Men look up to God
and He regards them from His lofty dwelling-place. He
manifests His love to their hearts.
IV. Windows are for
the exclusion of noxious vapours and reptiles. Earth¡¦s evils cannot enter
heaven. Men may enter
but not their sins. Whatever may defile other worlds in
God¡¦s universe
nothing can defile this one.
V. Windows are for
beauty. Whether of glass or of lattice work
they ornament earth¡¦s palaces and
temples. Heaven is full of beauty. The incomplete descriptions that are given
sometimes ravish us. (W. Osborne Lilley.)
An overflowing blessing
Not room enough in our
hearts! They are limitless in their sense of need.
1. Sense of poverty. God¡¦s title-deed expresses limitless ownership.
2. Sense of bereavement. God fills this with assurance of immortal
reunions.
3. Sense of ignorance. God promises the Spirit to ¡§lead you into all
truth.¡¨
4. Sense of sin. ¡§If sin abound
grace doth much more abound.¡¨
5. Sense of uselessness in purpose. Life¡¦s energies drained into
self
as the Jordan into the Dead Sea
instead of the desires flowing out to
bless man kind.
6. Sense of little service with the best intentions. God makes a
Christian useful beyond his ability
his planning
and his knowledge. (Homiletic
Monthly.)
Giving as an expression el
gratitude
I was once staying
with a woman whose husband was sick and out of employment when she received a
letter from C. H. Spurgeon containing a five-pound note and these few cheery
words
¡§A little something just to keep the pot boiling.¡¨ I changed the note
for her into gold
and taking one half-sovereign up
she said
¡§This must go
into the green purse
¡¨ and straightway produced from an underneath pocket
a
faded green purse into which the small yellow coin was dropped. I asked her why she separated her
money in that way
and she answered
¡§This is God¡¦s purse
we always put aside
a tenth.¡¨ ¡§But
¡¨ said I
¡§God does not require this from you in your present
circumstances.¡¨ ¡§No
¡¨ was her answer
and a beautiful light came upon her face
¡§He may not
but it is our joy to do it. See how good He has been! I never
asked Mr. Spurgeon to help us
nor did I even tell him that we were in a
corner. It would be selfish to spend all this on ourselves; where would be our
gratitude if we did?¡¨ (Charlotte Skinner.)
Blessing comes by giving
In the olden days
when
spring-time came
the Grand Duke of Venice
with attendant nobles and
innumerable priests
used to go to the last point of land
and there
standing
on the shores of the Adriatic
throw a gold jewelled ring into the ocean. It
was called ¡§Marrying Venice to the Sea.¡¨ In the same days when the Nile was at
its height
the dam was broken connecting the river with the canals
and as the
water rushed into its new channels
a living woman was thrown into the mad
stream to become the bride of the Nile. In each ceremony there was the idea
that blessing came by giving; the ring made Venice the queen of the seas--the
woman brought fertility to a whole nation. (Charlotte Skinner.)
Proportionate giving
When Mr. Marshall the
publisher was a young man of eighteen
he heard a sermon by the late Rev.
Baldwin Brown
which dealt chiefly with the stewardship of wealth. He left the
church determined that henceforth whatever money he had got
whether it was
much or little
he would always put aside one-tenth for the Lord before he
devoted any of it to his own use. This he continued to do for some years. After
a time he found himself giving away more money than many of his friends who had
much greater incomes. Some of them expostulated with him
and
as his wont was
he took the question to the Lord in prayer. ¡§Here
¡¨ said he
¡§I have given
away
believing it to be my duty
for purposes which I regard as yours
one-tenth of my income. Am I doing what is right? Will you give me a sign?¡¨ In
the year 1852 he devised the first illustrated programme for a public funeral
that had ever appeared in London--that of the Duke of Wellington. Now he prayed
to God. I am publishing this programme; it may succeed
it may fail. May I ask
that
in connection with the publication of this programme
you will give me a
sign that will give me clearly to understand whether I am to go on giving
to
curtail my subscriptions
or what I shall do?¡¨ Well
it turned out that the
programme was a great success. And then comes the most remarkable thing. When
the balance-sheet came to be made up for that programme
Mr. Marshall found to
his astonishment that the net profits that he had realised amounted
to the
very penny
to the sum which he had given away since his eighteenth year! When
he compared the figures
and found that they exactly corresponded
he felt that
his prayer had been answered; and
as he put it in his own quaint way
¡§I saw
that the Lord was determined never to be in debt with me
so I went ahead.¡¨
Afterwards
as his wealth multiplied
he increased the proportion.
Proportionate giving
1. That faithful and proportionate giving will be rewarded with
superabundant spiritual blessing. The statement does not require proof
since
experience has stamped it already as an axiom. Other things being equal
that
Christian who opens the broadest outlet for charity will find the widest inlet
for the Spirit. The health of a human body depends upon its exhalations as well
as upon its inhalations. It is reported that a boy who was to personate a
shining cherub in a play
on being covered over with a coating of gold-leaf
which entirely closed the pores of the skin
died in consequence
before relief
could be afforded. Woe to the Christian who gets so gold-leafed over with his
wealth
that the pores of his sympathy are shut
and the outgoings of his
charity restrained! He is thenceforth dead spiritually
though he may have a
name to live.
2. That faithful and proportionate giving will be rewarded with
abundant temporal prosperity. ¡§Honour the Lord with thy substance and with the
first-fruits of all thine increase: so shall thy barns be filled with plenty
and thy presses shall burst out with new wine¡¨ (Proverbs 3:9-10). This is but one specimen of many from the Old Testament. ¡§Give
and it shall be given unto you; good measure
pressed down
and shaken
together
and running over
shall men give into your bosom¡¨ (Luke 6:38). Let us now throw light upon this subject from a few inserted
leaves from a pastor¡¦s notebook. One says
¡§I knew a widow of limited means who
was remarkable for her liberality to benevolent objects. But a sad change came
into her by an unexpected legacy which made her wealthy
and then her contributions
began to fall below the amount of her straitened finances. Once she
volunteered: now she only gives when importuned
and then it is as meagre as if
the fountains of gratitude had dried up. Once when asked by her pastor to help
a cause dear to her heart in her comparative poverty
and to which she gave
five dollars then
now she proffers twenty-five cents. Her pastor called her
attention to the surprising and ominous change. ¡¥Ah
¡¦ she said
¡¥when day by
day I looked to God for my bread
I had enough to spare; now I have to look to
my ample income
and I am all the time haunted with the fear of losing it
and
coming to want. I had the guinea heart when I had the shilling means
now I
have the guinea means and the shilling heart.¡¦ It is a fearful risk to heart
and soul to become suddenly rich. This is one of the reasons why God lets many
of His best children acquire wealth so slowly
so that it may not be a snare to
them
may not chill their benevolence; that when wealth comes
the fever of
ambitious grasping may be cooled
and that benevolence may overtake avarice.¡¨
Now the only way to avoid this peril is to cultivate two habits
and let them
grow side by side
--the habit of economy and the habit of charity. If one¡¦s
economy grows steadily and alone
it will tend to dry up his charity; if one¡¦s
charity grows steadily
it will dry up his means
unless balanced by the other
virtue of economy. Therefore
let both grow together
then our giving will
increase just in proportion to our getting. (J. A. Gordon
D. D.)
Money and the blessing
We have brought the gifts
into the storehouse; now look out for the opening of the heavens. The first
blessing that will come will be one of prayer. The spirit of prayer poured out
will be continuous. Prayer is the chalice in which we fetch the water from the
rock. It is the ladder on which we climb up to pick the grapes hanging over the
wall of heaven. It is the fire that warms the frigid soul. Prayer is the lever.
The Divine promise is the fulcrum. Earnest prayer is always answered. Another
blessing will be a spirit of work. Not a Christian here but will be anxious
about somebody else. The Church was never in such a fair way for a blessing as
now. (T. De Witt Talmage
D. D.)
Prove Me now
1. With regard to the pardon of our sin for Christ¡¦s sake.
2. With regard to the purifying influence of the Gospel.
3. With regard to our guidance in the investigation of religious
truth.
4. With regard to the supply of our temporal wants.
5. With regard to the happiness of personal religion.
6. With regard to answers to prayer. (G. Brooks.)
Conditional blessing
The Hon. C. Rhodes
in a
recent meeting
told his audience that the extension of British power in Africa
had been the one object of his life for years. For this he had lived and
laboured. To him would come the purpose of his life
if in South Africa he
might see the British flag waving over a free and united empire. A noble
ambition
truly
for a patriotic heart
and worthy of the great efforts made
for its accomplishment. The prophet Malachi was engaged in a nobler mission
still. Far more worthy
in conception and results
was the work of winning an
apostate nation back to God. It was no easy task. The work of the reformer
never is. Divine love and courage made Malachi a patriotic saint
and led him
boldly to attack the evils of the sinful nation in which he lived. It is to one
of his most courageous messages that we would direct attention.
I. The grave
accusation made by God against this people--¡§Will a man rob God? Yet ye have
robbed Me.¡¨ This accusation was a startling one. Whoever would have thought
that men would rob God? They might rob their fellows
but surely they would
never rob the Lord. As Malachi uttered these words they made a great sensation. I imagine all
Jerusalem was in an uproar over his utterance. The merchants forgot their
merchandise as they discussed it in the bazaars. Priests gathered with scribes
in solemn council
and agreed that the man who had made such a statement was
mad. Yet this message was absolutely true. They were committing the awful sin
of robbing God: and when the excitement and anger had died down they were
forced to admit its truth. Men are robbing God in like manner to-day. God says
¡§Ye are not
your own: ye are bought with a price
¡¨ and yet they withhold themselves from
Him. Is not that robbery? The Holy Ghost speaks
¡§Know ye not that your body is
the temple of the Holy Ghost? Yet instead of permitting Him to dwell there
its
rooms are filled with sinful guests. Is not that robbery also? You say these
are strong
stout words. True! but God¡¦s messages are never vague or uncertain.
Great evils demand powerful remedies. Hence God calls robbery
robbery
and
sin
sin. He puts His finger upon the plague spot
and says
That is where you
are wrong.¡¨ The cupboard
of your life may be shut to others
and looks like some fair adornment on the
wall. He knows the secret spring
and reveals the skeleton of thy sin which
lies hidden within. ¡§Will a man rob God? Yet ye have robbed Me.¡¨
II. The sad result
of such a sinful course--¡§Ye are cursed with a curse
¡¨ etc. In the south of
Scotland there stands the ruin of a famous abbey. Its broken columns and arched
windows
its trellised doorways and roofless aisles
its damp chapels and
deserted altar
all speak sadly of a former glory and a departed greatness. The
curse of man has fallen upon it. Methinks
that as Malachi looked upon the life
of his countrymen he saw only a ruin which shadowed forth its former beauty and
greatness. Decay was stamped upon it. Its worship had become an abomination.
¡§Ye offer
¡¨ said Jehovah
¡§polluted bread upon Mine altar.¡¨ ¡§The table of the
Lord is contemptible¡¨ (Malachi 1:7). God¡¦s covenant was despised (Malachi 1:6). Justice and judgment were perverted. The sorcerer
the
adulterer
the false-swearer
and the oppressor fattened upon the woes of
others (Malachi 3:5). Israel was a moral ruin and a spiritual desolation. She was
despised by men and cursed by God. It is an awful thing to fall beneath God¡¦s
curse; and yet every soul which robs God has that curse upon him. History tells
us that wherever the axe of Richard the Lion-hearted swung
the stoutest mail
was splintered like matchwood
and the bravest men went down. God is a ¡§man of
war¡¨: the ¡§Lord of Hosts¡¨ is His name. ¡§He taketh up the isles as a very little
thing.¡¨ His strong arm can make the choicest defences a ruined heap. He shall
utterly destroy His foes. Men shall look for them
and they shall not be found.
Hast thou wondered why thy soul hath not prospered? Is God¡¦s curse resting upon
thee? How can it prosper when it is robbing God?
III. The just demand
which God makes--Bring ye all the tithes into the storehouse
that there may be
meat in Mine house.¡¨ In the preceding verse you will notice that God complains
of robbery from two sources
i.e.
tithes and offerings. The tithing God
requires: the offerings were freewill gifts over and above the tithes. Hence in
this demand God speaks of tithes only. Under the Jewish economy everything
connected with life and worship was built up upon one great principle
i.e.
ownership by God. Whilst they remained true it never failed. The land was
His
and so its first-fruits
whether of corn
fruit
or cattle
had to be redeemed
by an offering to Him. The firstborn of children were His
and they
too
had
to be redeemed. The same principle ran through their worship. Whenever they
appeared before Him they brought an offering. If they were too poor to give a
bullock
they gave a lamb; if too poor for this
they brought pigeons or turtle
doves. If to the tithes there are added these offerings
then a very modest
calculation shows that every pious Jew must have given about one-seventh of his
entire income to the Lord. It was only when their spiritual life grew dim that
these offerings and tithings ceased. But
says some one
¡§God does not demand
such things to-day; we are not under
law
but under grace.¡¨ True; but as Christ is better than Moses
and grace is
laden with richer blessings than the law
our generosity ought to flow out in
yet larger abundance; for the greater the blessing the greater the gratitude
and the greater the gratitude the greater the gifts. However much conditions
change
principles remain. Tithes meant at least three things.
1. They meant money. The produce of the field was the Jews¡¦ money. It
might be corn
fruit
oxen
sheep
or asses; but it was in these that his
wealth consisted
and of these he gave his tenth to the Lord. To-day the coin
of the realm is the medium of circulating wealth
but the principle of devoting
some portion of
it to the Lord is the same.
2. Tithes meant time. If the produce represented money
the
cultivation of it represented time. The ploughing
harrowing
sowing
etc.
which the successful farmer had to do
made great demands upon his time. If you
would bring all the tithes
your time will not be exempted. Let me put this
truth in another form. Suppose it took five minutes to pay a visit to a home.
Then if fifty Christians gave this one-tenth of time per day to visitation
they could pay no less than 900 visits daily.
3. Tithes meant talent. The man who would succeed in cultivation must
use his talents in mastering and applying the principles of agriculture. God asks the
produce and the time
but He demands the talents also. Have you the talent of
speech? God wants it. Of song? He requires it. Of organisation? He asks it. Of
literary ability? He will use it. Of humbler working power? He seeks it
and if
you withhold it you are robbing God. ¡§Bring ye all the tithes¡¨--not one
but
all.
IV. The abundant
blessing which god promises to those who obey him--¡§A blessing that there shall
not be room enough to receive it.¡¨ The figure is that of a great flood. Just as
the banks of a river are unable to hold the waters in flood-time
so will God bless the
person who obeys Him. He will fill to overflowing such an one with Divine
gifts. The seraphic Fletcher had to cry out
¡§Lord
stay Thy hand.¡¨ This
blessing means--
1. Prosperity. ¡§And I will rebuke the devourer for your sakes
and he
shall not destroy
the fruits of your ground; neither shall your vine cast her fruit before the
time in the field
saith the Lord of hosts¡¨ (Malachi 3:11).
2. Honour. ¡§And all nations shall call you blessed (Malachi 3:12).
3. Happiness. ¡§And ye shall be a delightsome land
saith the Lord of
hosts¡¨ (Malachi 3:12). How attractive would such a people be. To such would men cry
¡§We will go with you
for God is
with you.¡¦¡§ Too long has God¡¦s Israel been satisfied with
leanness
barrenness
dearth
and death. Worldliness
rationalism
and
formalism are eating out her life. As it is with the Church
so it is with
every individual. The Church¡¦s life is the exact counterpart of the individuals
who compose it. Recently I heard it stated that means were being invented to
stop the rain from falling in certain districts. Whether such a thing is
possible I cannot say. But this I know
that unless you bring all the tithes
into the storehouse you will shut up God¡¦s heaven of blessing
and there will
be famine in your soul. God wants to bless. (F. Inwood.)
Tithes brought into the
storehouse
In this part of the Divine
Word we have first a duty prescribed
and secondly a promise containing high
encouragement to its performance. The prescription of duty is expressed in
these words
¡§Bring ye all the tithes into the storehouse
that there may be
meat in Mine house
and prove Me now herewith
saith the Lord of hosts
¡¨ and
the promise follows
¡§if I will not open you the windows of heaven
and
pour
you out a blessing
that there shall not be room enough to receive it.¡¨ God¡¦s
ancient people had
in the days of Malachi
greatly failed in doing this duty
and here God charges them with robbery of no ordinary kind. Tithes were only a
part of the contributions of their worldly substance which the Israelites were
required to devote to the service of God; and as a leading part
they seem to
be employed in the text as a part for the whole. There was very much required
of them besides the tithes. They were to bring the first fruits
the male
firstlings of all clean beasts
and the redemption price of such as were
unclean. It does not appear
however
that coercive measures were employed to
enforce the furnishing of the various kinds of offerings
except by exclusion
from participating in spiritual privileges
which in many cases followed as a
necessary consequence of failure in this duty. The kings and rulers in Israel
are not reproved for not employing power and authority to enforce the payment
of tithes or other offerings. This seems to have been left between God and the
consciences of individuals.
I. Let us advert
to the law of proportion in this matter. Here it may be remarked--
1. That our offerings should bear a proportion to our resources. This
was the law under the Old Testament
and it is so under the New. Hence the
apostolic injunction
¡§Upon the first day of the week let every one of you lay
by him in store
as God hath prospered him¡¨ (1 Corinthians 16:2). This truth is also taught in these
words--¡§If there be first a willing mind
it is accepted according to that a
man hath
and not according to that he hath not¡¨ (2 Corinthians 8:12).
2. Remark that our offerings are to bear a proportion to the
exigencies of the public cause of God. These axe different at different times.
When the tabernacle was constructed in the wilderness
which by God¡¦s special
appointment was to be formed in many of its parts of costly materials
a very
large demand was made on the resources of the Israelites
which was met by an
unwonted measure of liberality
even till there was more than sufficient for
the work.
3. There is also to be a proportion between what is contributed to
the treasury of the Lord and expended on other objects. It is in this respect
that there is a very general failure in this duty. God had to complain of His
ancient people
by the prophet Haggai
that they dwelt in their ceiled houses
while His house lay waste. And perhaps there is nothing in which true
Christians fail more than in the disproportion between what they give freely
for other objects--not always necessary objects--and what they devote to God as
His portion
and for the promotion of His cause.
4. There is to be a proportion of its kind between the offering and
the glory and claims of that God to whom it is presented.
II. Of the spirit
in which offerings should be presented to the Lord.
1. This will manifest itself in giving God the first share of our
worldly increase. This is no doubt one thing taught in the prescription of the
first fruits. This is expressly taught in these words
¡§Honour the Lord with
thy substance
and with the first fruits of all thine increase¡¨ (Proverbs 3:9).
2. It is to be rendered willingly (2 Corinthians 9:7).
3. We are to esteem it an honour and a privilege to be called and
enabled to make offerings of our temporal substance to the Lord
David felt
deeply how great an honour and privilege it was to have the heart and the
ability to perform this duty
when he and his people contributed liberally to
the building of the Temple (1 Chronicles 29:13-14).
4. This should be rendered as an expression
though small
very
small
of our gratitude to God (2 Corinthians 8:9). What blessedness would they have in the
performance of this duty; first
in the purposes of their heart regarding it
and then in fulfilling them
having fellowship with God in all. Though the
immediate and special subject of the text plainly is literal tithes and other
external offerings
these offerings
however costly
behoved to be accompanied
with such offerings are are spiritual
in order to acceptance with God. With
out the spiritual the literal could not be offered in a right spirit. This kind
of tithes must also be brought into the storehouse. Here there are the
offerings of prayer and of praise
of Bible reading and spiritual meditation;
the offerings of worship to God in the closet
in the family
and in the public
assembly
as well as those of Sabbath sanctification
self-examination
and
fasting; the observance of the Lord¡¦s Supper
and personal and social vowing.
From this subject learn--
1. One thing which has a special influence in drawing down an
abundant temporal blessing on individuals and a people is a due rendering of
literal offerings to the promotion of the cause of God.
2. One thing which has special influence in drawing down the curse of
God on the worldly interests of individuals or a people is the withholding of a
due measure of literal offerings from God. (Original Secession Magazine.)
Systematic giving
I. The first
proposition that lies at the basis of this challenge is: there is a close
connection between religion and prosperity. I do not mean spiritual prosperity
but prosperity in the material things of life. There is a close and intimate
relationship between the righteousness which is enjoined upon us of the Lord
and the prosperity which is promised to follow. The Old Testament makes no
secret about it; it does not mince matters. Irrespective of all appeals to
motives of selfishness
and the fact that it lays itself open to reproach from
critical and cynical people
it boldly and plainly declares that if the
children of Israel will be obedient to the covenant and keep the commands God
has enjoined upon them
they shall he rewarded in return with plenty
with
prosperity
with an abundance of happiness and peace. All the history of all
the nations of the earth confirms that declaration
at any rate from national
standpoints. The nations that rise to pre-eminence rise in virtue of their
righteousness. No nation has ever fallen through external forces. It has fist
of all been honeycombed and undermined with inward deterioration
and then when
the first breath came from without
it was sufficient to bring about its
overthrow and ruin. And England will never fall if England is true to the
tradition of godliness and of honour. When it comes to personal matters
the
same principle must apply. But immediately difficulties appear. We recall at
once the Book of Job. We remember the 37th Psalm. These have their explanation
in the Providence of God. But notwithstanding these
the general rule holds
good that religion tends to prosperity. I remember when the only son of a
distinguished mayor of one of the largest cities in the North of England got
converted. His father was not troubled with too much seriousness in matters of
religion. He was one of the keenest of business men
and one of the most
level-headed fellows in the country. He shook hands with me as I sat in the
private room
and said: ¡§Mr. Chadwick
what has happened to my lad to-night is
worth more than you think. I would have given £100
000 for it.¡¨ I thought he
was not serious until I looked up and saw the tears in his eyes. He repeated
it. ¡§The commercial value to the lad is worth more than £100
000
¡¨ he said. I
found out he was not far wrong. I have met with more than one father who would
have given more than £100
000 if he could have guaranteed his son¡¦s conversion
and it would have been cheap at the price. Godliness is profitable to the life
that now is
as well as to that which is to come. I am not going to contend
that every man who becomes a Christian will become a millionaire; I am not
convinced that being a millionaire is a sure indication of prosperity. Barney
Barnato was a millionaire
and at last he jumped into the sea to cool his
brain! If a man to make millions sacrifices his soul his millions are bought at
too big a price. Neither am I going to contend that all Christian men will be equally
prosperous. If a man is born with only ninepence to the smiling
that is
threepence short. Christ can never make up the threepence short
and he will
always be short
converted or not converted. My contention is that God can do
more with ninepence than the devil can do with half a crown; and that there is
nothing in this world so calculated to make the best of a man as the religion
of the Lord Jesus Christ
intelligently grasped and enthusiastically lived. Of
course
you will ask me
what about the good men who do not get on? Well
there
are lots of them
and they are problems. But I have never known a good man fail
to get on because of his religion. A great many people go on the assumption
that religion can enable them to dispense with the common principles of
success. That can never be. If a man brings cattle to the market when the fair
is over he will not succeed
and he must blame himself that he did not get up
sooner in the morning. His religion should be manifested by promptitude
and
not
by pious expressions. Religion never makes up for laziness. Religion never
makes up for bad workmanship and lack of punctuality I would not give much for
the religion which does not make a man a better worker and a more punctual
workman. It is not brain that is wanted
but things coupled with character.
That which commands the highest price in the market to-day is efficiency and
trustworthiness. It is the greatest insult to this generation to say it is
impossible for a man to maintain his integrity and get on. He may not get on
very fast
but he will have a peaceful life and be prosperous if there is a God
in heaven and truth in the Book.
II. There is a
close conection between what a man gives and what he gets. Some men will never
lose less until they give more. God calls for the whole tithe
not for a tithe.
I believe people who give much lose much of the blessing of it
because they
give contrary to the principles laid down in the Bible. They often give as the
result of impulse or rivalry and competition. God has never let go His right to
the things material. Everything a man gets God snips a bit out of it
to remind
the man that he did not get it by his own skill and wit. God gave it to him
and man is not the proprietor but the steward. And the principle laid down is
this--that a man has got to settle between himself and his God what the
proportion ought to be which he should give to God. I think a tithe is a
generous maximum for the poor and a mean minimum for the rich. Unless a man
cultivates a habit of systematic giving when he has not much to give
he will
give little when he is rich. (S. Chadwick.)
Verse 12
Ye shall be a delightsome
land
saith the Lord of hosts.
The delightsome land
It is not necessary to
inquire minutely into the original application of these words. Enough that
Christianity belongs to countries as well as individuals; and that the Church
acts mightily upon every land to make it delightsome. It is more pertinent to
observe that the promise follows a description of the efficacy of prayer
and
includes the full blessing which God can pour out upon any people. What then
are some of the heavenly and spiritual blessings in Christ Jesus necessary to
make this land of ours delightsome in the eyes of the Lord of hosts?
I. A land is
delightsome that is purely and adequately supplied with Christ¡¦s gospel. It is
a delightsome land to the tourist
if the scenery be fine and the air pure; to the economist
if trade and commerce flourish
and social arrangements tend to the
accumulation of capital; to the worldly philanthropist
where employment is
good
pauperism low
laws reasonably fair and equal
and the refinements of civilisation
widely spread over the surface of the people. To the disciple of Jesus Christ a
different standard everywhere presents itself. The spiritual aspect of every
community first engrosses his attention and sympathies. To him the radical want
is the Gospel--the Gospel with its humbling discoveries of man¡¦s fallen and
lost estate by nature
and with its blessed proclamation of recovery by Christ.
Without this there is no pardon for the people¡¦s sins
no comfort for their
sorrows
no return to the image of God
or meetness for death
judgment
and
eternity. A delightsome land we shall not be till the famine of the Word of God
has everywhere come to an end--till not only in city and town and hamlet
all
that have ears to hear may hear
but may rest assured of hearing the same glad
tidings of great joy.
II. That rightly
prizes Christ¡¦s ordinances. While it is certainly true that in proportion to
the multiplication of Gospel agencies spiritual blessing follows as a general
rule
it by no means follows to the degree that ought to-have been witnessed.
There is sad neglect of the great salvation
neglect which only the Spirit of
God can overcome--neglect which expresses and registers itself b-y man¡¦s
treatment of the ordinances of salvation. Who Can follow the outwardly devout
to their dwellings
and record what proportion refuse to honour God there? Who
can pursue them to their closets
and see how many or how few walk with God and
live in the presence of Christ?
III. That multiplies
examples of Christ¡¦s converting grace. Take away conversion and you take away
Christianity. The two watchwords of evangelical religion are--the atonement and
the new birth. With regard to the mode of conversion
it is confessedly
various. The time may come
which some anticipate
when conversion shall be
generally noiseless and gradual
effected in the early dawn of life
as the
result of pious training
when the Spirit of God shall copiously descend as
morning dew
and leave a blessing for all the coming day. But to some
conversion must come as a wave of the sea
with a shock and an agitation. There
must be a struggle between the old and the new--between self and Christ. The
soul in such a conflict may be expected to be shaken to its centre
with fear
and shame
and sadness
ere faith come to its relief
and love toward the
Crucified One gain the victory. The conversions which are going on within the
circle of Christian influence make up the true history of the world. They are
the events which are noted in the register of God
where the ordinary incidents
of human history have no place. It is not the first birth of any man that
glorifies God or satisfies Christ. Without the second it is an abortion and a
catastrophe.
IV. That maintains
a high and general standard of conformity to the image of Christ. Conversion is
nothing save as a step to sanctification. And sanctification is resemblance to
Christ. The ultimate design of Christ¡¦s mission was to multiply Himself; to
stamp Himself upon the minds
the hearts
and the lives of men! Such a conformity
is indeed defective in every case: still
under the training of the Spirit
forms of moral loveliness have appeared
and are appearing
which differ
radically from those which the world saw before Christ
or which it is capable
of producing where His name is disowned. Would it not be a result of
incalculable blessedness
were the higher standard of Christian life found in
some to be more widely diffused
still more were a marked and decisive impress
of Christian piety to become universal
or to approach to universality? The
transformation of the professing Church into a visibly living body would
certainly act on the world as life from the dead. Regenerate character to God¡¦s
noblest work.
V. That assists in
bringing other lands to Christ. This was one attraction of ancient Israel to
God. He saw in it the focus of blessing; the central point whence the light of
His glory was everywhere to spread till the whole dark orb was illuminated.
Such is Christian light that like that of the sun
it cannot be seen but by its
own diffused and propagated rays. How can Africa
India
China
the South Seas
ever call us blessed
unless we teach them our blessedness
and make them share
it? (John Cairns
D. D.)
A delightsome land
Apply to our own land
which the people of all other lands deem blessed
and which in itself is
delightsome. Different views of a country are taken by the tourist
artist
naturalist
economist
philanthropist
and Christian. Compare our land with
others in regard to its spiritual condition and privileges.
1. An adequate supply of pure Gospel ordinances.
2. An appreciative attendance on the faithful administration of them.
3. A gratifying result in the conversion of sinners and the
edification of believers.
4. An earnest effort to supply the whole land with them.
5. A zealous endeavour to extend to all lands the full blessings of
them. (Wm. Ormiston
D. D.)
Verse 13
Verse 14
Ye have said
It is vain
to serve god.
The service God demands
Those who were the
immediate objects of the prophet¡¦s ministry had departed from the service of
God. The priests having broken their covenant
the people were ruined by their
vile example
and went back from God by a perpetual backsliding.
I. The nature of
that service which God demands.
1. Our service to God must be sincere. All true religion ceases when
the heart is not right with God.
2. Our Christian service must be scriptural.
3. This service must be uniform. There is
in matters of true
religion
a balance power--always keeping its possessor in happy and perfect
equality.
4. In this service you
must be diligent.
5. In this service you must be employed until you die. Having once
put your hand to the plough
you are not to look back.
II. The advantages
of that service.
1. It gives
m return
the richest blessings. The Christian service
gives us liberty
and liberty of the highest kind; for
if the Son make you
free
then are you free indeed. So rich are the blessings this service bestows
that we cannot speak their worth; and so numerous
that to tell their vast
amount our efforts are all vain.
2. Another advantage is elevation and honour.
3. This service brings contentment.
4. This service takes away the fear of death.
5. This service will be rewarded in heaven. Apply to four
descriptions of persons.
Religion delineated and
depreciated
I. RELIGION
DELINEATED. Three expressions used to represent it
1. To serve God. A great difference between serving God and serving
man. In the one case the servant benefits the master
in the other the sole benefit is the
servant¡¦s. In the one the service is estimated by work actually done; in the
other by work earnestly purposed. In the one there is a surrender of freedom;
in the other there is an attainment of it. He who engages to serve man must
surrender some portion of his liberty; he who serves God alone
secures the
highest freedom.
2. To keep His ordinance. This is only a branch of the service
or
perhaps
the method of doing it. God has ordinances or institutes
some are
moral
some are ceremonial; the latter may cease to bind
the former are
everlastingly in force.
3. To walk mournfully before the Lord. To ¡§walk¡¨ before the Lord is
religion in perfection
religion in heaven. It implies an abiding consciousness
of the Divine presence
and continual progress in the Divine will. Walking
¡§mournfully¡¨ characterises the religion of earth; it is associated with
penitence
contrition
etc. The walk of religion is only mournful here.
II. Here we have
practical religion depreciated. ¡§Ye have said
It is vain to serve God
and
what profit is it
¡¨ etc.
1. Men say this when religion does not answer their secular
expectations. Many take up with religion in these days because of the secular
good they expect will accrue from their profession of it; if the good come not
they think it vain.
2. Men say this when they see the truly religious in poverty and
affliction. Asaph saw this when he said
¡§I have washed my hands in vain.¡¨
3. Men say this when they have taken up religion from selfish
motives. A man who takes up with religion for the sake of good will get no good
out of it; nay
will get disappointment
for ¡§he that seeketh his life shall
lose it.¡¨ No truly religious man has said religion is vain
he feels it to be
its own reward--the highest reward. In truth
it is the only service on earth
that will not prove vain. (Homilist.)
Is religion useless
The charge here is
that
they who sin
prosper. A similar complaint common to all ages. God takes it as
a charge against Himself.
I. The charge.
Those who profess to serve God complain that there is no ¡§profit.¡¨ They are not
happy--not blessed. What is the inference? That the proud
the self-willed
self-confident
self-complacent
are ¡§happy.¡¨ ¡§The tempters of God
¡¨ who
practically set Him at defiance--dare Him to do the worst--are delivered.
Happiness and visible advantage are connected with rebellion.
II. Examine the
facts.
1. The religion itself is not that which God requires
and which He
has promised to bless.
2. The happiness is only fleshly
imperfect. The deliverance is
present and temporal. The happiness is not true--not of She whole man. See the
true servant of God; pardoned
spiritually renewed
glorifying God in body and
spirit. See him in the peace and joy of his soul. See him walking under the
guardianship of providence. Dying in hope. Carried to Abraham¡¦s bosom. Accepted
in the judgment. Admitted into heaven. Will you say then
¡§It is vain to serve
God
¡¨ and that there is no profit in walking before Him? (G. Cubitt.)
Unacceptable sacrifices
The law was not
only typical institution; it was a system of government appointed and
administered by God Himself. It contains
therefore
references to the great
principles
rules
and characteristics of acceptable obedience. The text refers
to priests
but not exclusively. It describes the union of formal
piety--something must be offered; avarice
producing unwillingness to offer
what God required
as being too costly; and cunning
devising an expedient
namely
to ¡§offer the torn
the lame
and the sick.¡¨ Thus they brought an
offering
but it was unacceptable
and
instead of a blessing
produced a
curse. Lessons--
1. God requires that we offer Him a sacrifice.
2. Rightly offered
He accepts the offering
and blesses the offerer.
3. While there are those who will offer nothing
there are others who
seek to reconcile duty with their own carnal interests. They seek not spiritual
preparation for duty
they present partial
formal service
while they live in
habitual disobedience.
4. Such persons are
as far as their object is concerned
¡§deceivers.¡¨ Actually they cannot deceive God. Practically
and in their own
intention
they act as though they could.
5. They are ¡§accursed.¡¨ God accepts not their sacrifice. They have no
positive blessing. If you would accept ably sacrifice
you must give yourselves
up entirely to God. For this
spiritual preparation is requisite. You must have
spiritual regeneration
healing your soul
that your offering may be
acceptable. Thus prepared
the whole must be given
in holy obedience
holy
exercises. Your formal religion confesses that something is necessary. You are
self-condemned. Your religion
such as it is
aggravates your guilt. (G.
Cubitt.)
Accusing God
They bring a twofold
accusation against God
that they received no reward for their piety when they
faithfully discharged their duty towards God
and also that it was better with
the ungodly and the despisers of God than with them. We hence see how
reproachfully they exaggerated what they deemed the injustice of God
at least
how they themselves imagined that He disappointed the just of their deserved
reward
and that He favoured the ungodly and the wicked as though He was
pleased with them
as though He intended the more to exasperate the sorrow of
His own servants
who
though they faithfully worshipped
yet saw that they did
so in vain
as God concealed Himself
and did not reward their services. That
the good also are tempted by thoughts of this kind
is no wonder
when the
state of things in the world is in greater confusion (Ecclesiastes 9:2). There is really no occasion for indignation and envy offered to
us
but as God designedly tries our faith by such confusions
we must remember
that we must exercise patience. Let us learn to form a right judgment as to
what our life is
and then let us bear in mind how many are the reasons why God
should sometimes deal roughly with us. Thus all our envying will cease
and our
minds will be prepared calmly to obey. In short
these considerations will
check whatever perverseness there may be in us
so that neither our wicked
thoughts nor our words will be so strong as to rise in rebellion against God. (John
Calvin.)
The worshipping service
required of Christians
The Jews were
required by the Levitical law to offer unto God the best of their flock in
sacrifice. This they did in their happiest and purest times. In the age of
Malachi their worship had greatly degenerated. It had become
in fact
a
totally hypocritical service. Heavy judgments are denounced against them by the
prophet for this contempt of God. First
the rejection of their service. Next
the abolition of their Church
State
and privileges
and the transfer of them
to the Gentiles. And a withering curse upon them
both individually and at
length nationally
for their hypocrisy. These things happened to them as
examples to us
the people of God under the new dispensation. God requires the
best of us
and of what belongs to us. We stand engaged to render this to Him
by the acceptance of His covenant.
I. The nature of
the requisition which god here makes.
1. We must serve Him with our best powers. First and chiefly the
powers of the mind. Bodily service
apart from any interest taken in it by the
mind
is of little worth. God requires the ¡§heart.¡¨ We must worship Him in
spirit
for He is a Spirit. By the spirit we are to understand the mind with
all its powers. The body is the altar
but the spirit is the oblation. The spirit
includes memory
judgment
and affections. Bodily service
as the offspring and
expression of the mind
is required
and is highly acceptable.
2. We must give Him the best season of life. This is the season of
youth. Then our
powers are fresh and vigorous; and then we are most beset by other suitors.
3. We must give Him the best portion of our time. Religion must not
be regarded as a relaxation
but prosecuted as a business--the great business
of life. It is termed a calling and a work.
4. We must give to God the best of our talents and substance. We
ought
as Christians
to surpass others in common charity and benevolence; for
grace is to improve and heighten all human virtues
as well as to improve those
that are Divine.
II. The reasons by
which this requisition of our best in the service of God is enforced. God will
only accept the best
for the following reasons--
1. His greatness. God is a great king
for the extent of His
dominions
the number of His servants
and the reverence paid to Him by them.
For the information He receives of our service. For the numerous methods in
which He can express His displeasure.
2. His goodness enforces His claim. What have we that we have not
received? All the faculties of our mind and organs and members of our body we owe
to Him. The same may be said of our substance. To Him we are indebted for the
ability
the health
the industry by which it was obtained.
3. The credit of our religion demands this service. This ought to be
dear to us; and it is to be maintained and promoted by such a service as has
been specified. And how is a religion advantaged when a just picture is given
of it in the lives and tempers of its recipients!
4. The evils avoided and the benefits obtained by compliance with the
demand
enforce its obligation. How fearful the communication of Christ to the
lukewarm Church of Laodicea. What encouraging promises
in the Scripture
meet
those who are careful
diligent
and devout in the service of God!
Improvement--
1. Let all see that they are properly capacitated for this service.
In order to this
a twofold change must take place: in our state--in our
character.
2. Let us be thankful for the existence of public worship among us
and seek after its improvement and extension.
3. Let us hail with a spirit of religious joy and co-operation the
approaching diffusion of Gospel-worship all over the world. (J. Leifchild
D. D.)
Verse 16-17
Then they that feared the
Lord.
The fear of God a
power-principle
The events which
from
their importance and prominence in the sacred annals
may be classed as marking
successive epochs in the development of the Divine purpose
were preceded by
periods of conflicting moral forces and unpropitious influences. But the
darkest moral night has witnessed the birth-throes of giant thoughts
mad the
conception of mightiest schemes for the furtherance of human weal. The state of
the Israelitish people contemporaneous with the events detailed in our text was
in some respects the saddest in all their history. But despite all this the
world was wheeling into the light of Messiah¡¦s day. The apostasy of those days
and the signs of coming wonders discerned upon the face of the spiritual
heavens
caused all who feared the Lord to speak often one to another
that
they might keep themselves mindful of the evil forces around them
mindful of
the near approach of the Ancient of days
and that an effectual door might be
kept open for His royal entrance. These of themselves were but a small and
inconsiderable band
yet representatives of eternal truth
and inheritors of
richest promises. But God works His highest purposes and reveals His deepest
thoughts with the least of human help.
1. We have abundant reason for assuming that the fear of the Lord is
a power-principle in the life of grace. This power has and will ever be felt as
a regulative influence in the highest and lowest spheres of existence. It has
asserted itself in gathering into available shape the dissipated strength of
the spiritual and moral worlds
and in elevating man to a standard of purity
and to companionship with the angels of God. There is in nature a force that
acts upon every molecule of matter
adjusting each to its proper place and
relation
and grouping the whole into uniformity and shape. The fear-principle
in the life of grace
in its regulative aspect
is analogous to this mysterious
law of nature. It gives outline and motion to every thought and desire that
brings the soul to God
produces harmony among the affections
where discord
reigns; elevates moral conduct
and accelerates growth in the life of grace.
The fear-principle becomes also a cohesive power. It draws into the firmest
compact kindred spirits
and unites with the strongest bonds of sympathy those
who have a common fear
a common hope
and a common faith. There is a sentiment
of patriotism binding together the constituencies of parties and nations
that
runs like links of steel through the bosoms of veterans gathered under a common
flag--it is reverence for the honour
love for the name of country. And the
fear of God--reverence for His law
mad love for His love--binds His people
together in allegiance more enduring than earth¡¦s strongest ties. The fear of
the Lord also has resistive energy
for it wages ceaseless warfare against the
evils environing the individual
or the community of faith. The activity
growing out of these states and energies becomes expansive with the highest and
broadest significance. Every day of the soul¡¦s allegiance to God its frontiers
became more invulnerable to attack and invasion. Spiritual growth is
cumulative--as eternal as the life of God. And the God-fear power is
aggressive.
2. There is a Divine recognition and support of the fear-power developed
in the life of grace. ¡§The Lord hearkened and heard.¡¨ If the claims of earthly
loyalty are recognised
and if they command support
how will not loyalty to
the highest enlist the prowess of heaven
and the valour and prestige of
angelic soldiery.
3. The ultimate end contemplated
and achieved in this God-fear power is the glorious exaltation of man in the
scale of being. ¡§And they shall be Mine
saith the Lord of hosts.¡¨ (H. M.
Dubose.)
Men that feared the Lord
I. THE PEOPLE
MENTIONED. By the ¡§fear of the Lord¡¨ we are not to understand slavish fear
which dreads the punishment rather than the sin which is the cause of the
punishment; but a filial fear; a holy affection in the soul
whereby it is
inclined to reverence God
and to approve of His words and ways. This fear is a
new covenant blessing
and the gift of God.
II. The employment
they were engaged in. ¡§They spake often one to another.¡¨ Of the love of God;
and if they had been Christians
we should have added
of the redemption in
Christ
and of the operation of the Spirit. He who has a heart for God
has a
mouth to speak for Him
as well as to Him.
III. The honour
conferred on them. ¡§The Lord hearkened.¡¨ This shows God¡¦s special regard for
them; the notice He takes of them
and His approbation of them. ¡§A book of
remembrance was written.¡¨ In allusion to kings that keep registers (Ezra 4:15). (S. Barnard.)
Godly fear the
distinguishing character of believers
Times of prevailing and
abounding wickedness are seasons of painful trial to the people of God.
I. Some of the
distinguishing features in the character of the people whom God claims as His
own.
1. They are described as those that ¡§feared the Lord.¡¨ Distinguish
the fear of God which is of nature from that which is of grace. The most wicked
and abandoned of men have their seasons of fear. They cannot shake off all
dread of Him whose authority they venture to question
and whose laws they
presume to disregard. Could we inspect the hearts of those that know not God
we should cease to estimate so highly their boasted felicity. But the true fear
of the Lord arises from a different source
and produces different effects. It
is that feeling which is spoken of in Scripture
as the beginning of wisdom
as
a strong confidence
as a fountain of life. Those who possess it are described
as objects of the peculiar favour and gracious protection of God. On account of
its importance
as well as its actual effects
it is often put for the whole of
religion
and considered as comprehending all its duties. They that fear the
Lord are such as have not only the form
but the power of godliness. The fear
of God dwells and rules in their souls
it forms their temper
and influences
their conduct.
2. ¡§They thought upon His name.¡¨ It is a mark of the ungodly
that
God is not in all his thoughts. But these delight to think upon a name endeared
to them as the name of Him who has done wondrously for them. In seasons of
painful and afflictive dispensations they delight to think upon God. They
delight to recall the gracious thoughts of God towards them. The feeling is not
a mere notion of God
or a transient feeling of His power and excellency: it is
the habitual feeling of the soul
and a source of holy comfort and heavenly
peace amidst the vicissitudes of life: it gives a sanctity even to our worldly
employments
and renders our ordinary occupations a means of glorifying God.
True believers set God always before them.
3. Those who ¡§feared the Lord¡¨ also ¡§Spake often one to another.¡¨
Conversation is a peculiar gift: it forms the chain of intercourse between man
and man
and reminds us that we were born
not to waste our lives in selfish
pleasures
or in unprofitable seclusion from the world. The Christian¡¦s duty consists
not in a life of separation from his fellow-creatures
but of active exertion
for the benefit of all who are placed within the sphere of his influence. In
order to promote these important purposes
he is furnished with the gift of
speech
and is enabled to communicate with others on their necessities
and to
invite from them reciprocal love and friendly intercourse. The talent only
becomes valuable when it is employed for useful purposes. We do not say that
the conversation of Christians will always be on the subject of religion
but
true religion will always give a savour of grace to the conversation. There is
a special sort of conversation which Christians enjoy with each other
which is
doubtless spoken of in the text. They converse on the things of peace
and
things wherewith they may be edified. They delight to speak of the glories of
the Redeemer
and the blessedness of His saints. Believers
in their social
intercourse
rise superior to the things of time
and converse on those of
eternity.
II. The gracious
attention with which these persons were regarded by God. ¡§The Lord hearkened
and heard it.¡¨ Not only is God about our path
He is intimately present with
our thoughts. As amongst men
things notable are recorded in a book of
remembrance
so in the Eternal Mind are registered all the thoughts
words
and
actions of men. Applications--
1. Examine yourselves
prove yourselves by the test of this text.
2. Be watchful against a trifling
censorious spirit.
3. Study the Scriptures
which present you with such excellent
examples.
4. Pray for grace. (W. Mayors
M. A.)
Men who feared the Lord
They were bad times when
the prophet Malachi was sent forth upon his message. Profaneness was gone forth
throughout the land. Men openly declared it was a vain and unprofitable thing
to worship God. Even in those days there was a remnant according to the
election of grace.
I. The conduct of
these godly men. They ¡§feared the Lord.¡¨ Men may fear God in the sense of
trembling at His judgments. The fear meant here is a holy reverential awe of
God such as none but His own dear children entertain. These people looked up to
Him with the deepest veneration as their Maker and their Saviour. They served
Him acceptably with reverence
and ¡§godly fear.¡¨ They are said to have ¡§thought
on the Lord¡¦s name.¡¨ To think upon a name would be
in other cases
to think
upon an empty sound. But to think on the Lord¡¦s name is a most profitable and
delightful meditation. For His name is His nature; what the Lord is called
He
is. This name--merciful and gracious--was written on their hearts and their
affections. Look at their conduct. Doubtless their whole practice was con
sistent; but our attention is particularly drawn to the way in which their
tongues were occupied. Their communications were serious and spiritual. They
sought each other¡¦s company for the sake of sweet communion and profitable
conversation. Two things gave value to all this holy conversation. It proceeded
from the heart. They talked together in a very anxious and difficult time. It
is an easy thing to talk religiously when religion is in fashion.
II. The gracious
purposes of god respecting them. However privately their conversations might be
carried on
the ear of God was open to it all. If God hears
we may be sure God
does not forget the pious conferences of His people. ¡§A book of remembrance was
written.¡¨ The pious conversation of His servants is ever fresh in God¡¦s mind
as if it were written in a book
and the book were spread before Him. What doth
God account to be His jewels? Not what men account so. His jewels are His
people. The ornament He prizes is the ¡§meek and quiet spirit¡¨ of the believer.
When shall be the day when He shall make these jewels up? The day of judgment.
He will shortly accomplish the number of His elect
and then He will make up
His jewels.
III. The effect all
this will have on the ungodly world. ¡§It is vain to serve God
¡¨ said that
ungodly generation. There is a day at hand
when another estimate shall be
formed. When you shall see the Lord make up His jewels
esteeming every man as
such who hath feared Him
thought upon Him
and confessed Him--then shall you
perceive at last that there is a difference unspeakable between those who serve
God
and those who serve Him not. Conclusion--Hold up this text before those of
you who profess godliness as containing an example for imitation. You see how
those ancient saints delighted in edifying conversation with each other
and
how attentive the Lord was to it. Let the text reprove us and stir us up. (A.
Roberts
M. A.)
God¡¦s people in a godless
age
Malachi gives in this book
of prophecy a fivefold picture of God; a four fold picture of the sins of the
priesthood; and a sevenfold picture of the sins of the people. God describes
Himself as the sovereign God
who sees no reason beyond Himself for the
bestowment of any blessing which He chooses to give
God is described as a God
who makes Himself known as a master and as a father
to those who see Him as a
sovereign
as the electing God. God commissions the prophet to hold Him up as a
prayer-answering God. He was the maker of an eternal covenant. He is the God
who more than repays the services of His servants. The first great sin of the
priests is the offering of polluted bread
etc. They give to Him what they
would be ashamed to give to their temporal rulers. Then they were desirous to
enrich themselves by the profanation of God¡¦s religion. They would not do
anything in God¡¦s service for nought. They wearied in God¡¦s service. They were
not only going astray themselves
but causing others to go astray. The sins of
the people are idolatry; impurity; a self-justifying spirit. Various dreadful
crimes. Asking what profit shall we have if we serve God. Resisting an appealing God. In the
text we have God¡¦s people in the midst of this apostasy of priests and people
in the midst of this neglect of God
God¡¦s people are here described--
I. By their
principles. ¡§They feared the Lord.¡¨ The wicked
or unconverted
are kept from
sin by fear of punishment. The master-principle in the breast of a righteous
man is not a slavish fear
but the fear that arises from the knowledge of God
as a forgiving God--that arises from a consciousness that he has received
incalculable blessings from God. It is connected with the consciousness that God
has pardoned your sins
and has accepted you in the Beloved.
II. By their
employment.
1. Their external employment. ¡§They are speaking to one another.¡¨
What about? About the moral troubles of their times. In the darkness of this
world
Christians are to be known by their speaking to each other.
2. Their internal employment. They thought on the name of their God.
The saints spoke of what they had been thinking
and brought it out as the
centre of their union
as the nucleus around which they erected themselves.
III. Their
privileges. God hearkened and heard those that thought and spoke of Him. He
drew nigh; and a book of remembrance was written before Him for them that feared Him.
It was the Lamb¡¦s book of life
in which the saints were written from the foundation
of the world. And I do not think it was their names that were written
but the
evidences of their faith were written. The book which contains their names is
written in eternity; and the book which contains the evidence of their faith
was written in time. We all love to be thought of; it is a holy ambition to
desire to be thought of by God.
IV. Their hope.
¡§They shall be Mine
when I make up My jewels.¡¨ The great distinction shall be
made in the day when Jesus Christ shall come--then those who knew Christ
who
loved Christ
who kept watch for His appearance
shall be saved
as jewels are
saved
in the day of danger. (N. Armstrong.)
The delineation of God¡¦s
people
I. They feared the
Lord. There are those who are sometimes smitten with feelings of terror and
horror when their conscience is tender
when some providential circumstances
arouse them to consideration. They begin to feel
but it is temporary
it is
not deep. The people of God fear Him with the fear of a child. As a child fears
his father
so the child of God fears God. He fears not only His power
he
fears His character. He fears lest his inconsistencies should bring disgrace
upon His name and upon His religion. He feels what he owes to God--that he owes
Him everything. The people of God
who fear the Lord
have a constant sense of
His presence. That presence continually controls and directs them. And in their
private doings
where no eye is upon them
they fear the Lord.
II. They spake
often one to another. That is
they held conversation with each other. Those
who are God¡¦s people will talk of God
they cannot help it. They talk of His
honour
His work of salvation
and all the great redemptive themes. They talk
of the attributes of Deity
as brought out in the great work of Christ. They
talk of the sufferings of God¡¦s people. They gently reprove each other¡¦s faults
and failings
faithfully dealing with each other. And they speak often one to
another. They talk without restraint. Whenever they have opportunity
such
things are their themes.
III. They thought
upon his name. The name of God is the ¡§I am¡¨! His full name is given in Exodus 34:6-7. The people of God are a contemplative people. They study His
character
His purposes
His grace: they study His attributes. They study the
Word of God. They study themselves in their relations with God. (Hugh Allen
M. A.)
God and the flood
I. Good men in
their relation to God.
1. They reverence Him. Malachi tells us that these old saints ¡§feared
the Lord.¡¨ Not a slavish
but a filial fear
not a dread of His power
or His
anger
but a holy awe of His majesty mingled with a loving admiration. Filial
reverence lies at the basis of all true religion.
2. They think upon Him. ¡§ They thought upon His name.¡¨ The name of
God was His revealed character
His reputation. The intellect of the good is
chiefly engaged in the contemplation of God as He is revealed in nature
history
the Bible
Christ. There is no higher theme of thought than this
not even
for angels.
3. They talk about Him. ¡§They spake often one to another.¡¨ The chief
theme of thought will always be the leading subject of converse. ¡§Out of the
heart the mouth speaketh.¡¨ Souls
though constitutionally social
can only meet
and mingle on a subject of common interest; the loftier and purer the subject
the closer and more exquisite the communion. As the rays can only meet in the
sun
so souls can only meet in true fellowship in the name of God. This is the
platform of genuine social intercourse.
II. God in relation
to good men.
1. He hears their converse. ¡§The Lord hearkened and heard it.¡¨ All
sounds in the creation vibrate in the Divine ear; the fall of the dewdrop as well as the
thunder of the tempest; the sighs of an infant as well as the choruses of
eternity; the oath of the blasphemer as well as the prayer of the saint. But He
pays special attention to the words of the good. They travel to Him as the
cries of the babe to the heart of the mother.
2. He registers their history. ¡§A book of remembrance was written
before Him.¡¨ He is
represented as having recorded what He observes and hears. This book of
remembrance before the Lord is no mere figure. The great universe is a book in
which every sound uttered
every word spoken
are recorded. Science teaches
that every syllable is printed imperishably in the surrounding air. Nature
photographs not the mere features of the face
nor the form of the body
but
every changing look
every passing thought
etc.
3. He pledges their salvation; which includes glory in the future
and protection in the present. His providence shall guard them with all the
carefulness of a father¡¦s heart. (Homilist.)
Threefold aspect of true
sainthood
I. The life of the
good
as it is manifested upon earth. ¡§Then they that feared the Lord.¡¨ It is--
1. Loyal. There is profound reverence; a filial
not a slavish fear.
Not fearing the anger of God
but fearing to offend Him; not forsaking sin
because it brings punishment
but because God hates it. Such fear of God will
engender love
inspire faith
produce holiness
secure obedience.
2. It is social. ¡§Spake often one to another.¡¨ True piety is a
cheerful
sympathetic thing; it does not destroy our social instincts
but
intensifies and ennobles them. The natural tendency of the fear of the Lord in
the heart is to link men together in the bonds of brotherhood
to hush the
discord of society
and to lead us to bear each other¡¦s burdens
and so fulfil
the law of Christ. These believers spake often one to another--not of each
other¡¦s failings--not for scandal or strife
but about the work of the Lord
and to each other¡¦s edification.
3. It was also secret. There was the inner as well as outer
the
subjective as well as the objective life; they ¡§thought upon His name.¡¨ They
were not all talk; they were not hypocrites--¡§talkatives¡¨--they had heart
religion. As a man thinketh in his heart
so is he; and as he thinks
he loves
and lives. Our life must be of this sort to please God
for He looketh at the
heart. We must not forsake the assembling of ourselves together; and our
affections must be fixed on things above.
II. The life of the
good
as it is recognised in heaven. ¡§And the Lord hearkened and heard it
and
a book of remembrance was written before Him.¡¨
1. It is known in heaven. God recognises those who fear Him
though
they may be little and unknown
they are loved and prized by God. The Lord is
represented as bending from His throne
and listening to the sounds that come
from the earth; and as He hearkens
He hears and recognises the voice of His
people
who hold sweet communion with each other
and hallowed communion with
Himself; as by unseen electric wires
with inconceivable swiftness
holy
thoughts and words flash to heaven
and enter the ear of the Most High. Our
conversation is in heaven.
2. It is recorded there. God blots out the sins of His people from
His book
but He keeps a book of remembrance for the virtues of His saints. We
may forget our work of faith and labour of love
but God never forgets.
III. The life of the
good
as it will be consummated in the last great day. This shows--
1. It will be crowned with the highest possible honour. We shall be
owned as friends
and children
and companions of God for ever.
2. It will be crowned with the highest possible glory. ¡§Jewels¡¨ are
among a monarch¡¦s brightest and costliest things; and God speaks of His
believing servants as His ¡§jewels.¡¨ (F. W. Brown.)
Genuine religion
Three things are
noteworthy--
I. The essence of
genuine religion. ¡§They that feared the Lord.¡¨ The men who fear God may be
divided into two classes.
1. Those who fear Him with a slavish fear. The uurenewed millions
when they think of Him at all dread Him
their guilty consciences invest Him
with attributes of such horror that they shudder at the idea of Him
they flee
from His presence. ¡§I heard Thy voice in the garden
and I was afraid.¡¨ All
that is superstitious in the world
all that is barbaric in the religion of
Christendom
spring from this dread of God.
2. Those who fear Him with a filial fear. The fear which a loving
child has for a worthy and noble sire. There is
perhaps
always a kind of fear
in connection with true love. We fear
not that the object will harm us
but
that we may harm or displease the object.
II. The sociality
of genuine religion. ¡§Spake often one to another.¡¨ We are social beings
and
what interests us most has the most power in bringing us together. Nothing
interests a religious man so much as religion. Spake no doubt in language of
mutual instruction
mutual comfort
mutual exhortation. There is no force in
the world so socialising as religion.
III. The worth of
genuine religion. See what God does with the genuinely religious.
1. He specially attends to them. ¡§The Lord hearkened and heard it.¡¨
2. He claims them as His own. ¡§And they shall be Mine
saith the Lord
of hosts.¡¨
3. He appreciates them as precious. In that day when I make up My
jewels.¡¨ The word here rendered jewels is in Exodus (Exodus 19:5) rendered peculiar treasure. ¡§They are peculiarly precious to
Me.¡¨ He knows the worth of their existence
the cost of their restoration
the
greatness of their capabilities.
4. He distinguishes them from all others. (Homilist.)
The Lord¡¦s people
The temptations of the professing
Church of God seem to have been much the same in all ages. One has been to
neglect or forsake the assemblies of the Lord¡¦s people for worship and
instruction. In old times there was the same tendency to weariness at the
monotony of religious exercises
the same craving for novelty in the human
heart
as now. In Malachi¡¦s days the world did not look with favour on
religion; the world regarded religion as a mean and useless thing; the world
had a good word for any one rather than for the humble followers of God
who
knew and loved the truth. But
even then
there were those who were not ashamed
to meet together
and encourage one another
in the ways of the Lord.
I. The character
of the Lord¡¦s people. The circumstances of life
and the positions in which
they are placed
bring out the real character of men. So with regard to
spiritual things
circumstances manifest the real character. Times of trial and
opposition serve to show who has real grace
and who has only the semblance of
it. Tribulation and persecution on account of the Word is in the Sacred
Scriptures compared to the refiner¡¦s fire
which separates the dross from the
pure gold. We ought to rejoice that
in the overruling power and grace of the
great Head of the Church
it is turned into a means of good to them who are
troubled
and that the wrath of man is made to praise Him
in the manifestation
of His grace in His people
and in their refinement and establishment in the
faith. In those trying times there were those who dared to go against the
prevailing current of the world¡¦s opinion
and ¡§spake often one to another.¡¨
¡§They feared the Lord
and thought upon His name.¡¨ Such are the Lord¡¦s people
in every age.
II. Their
prospects. ¡§They shall be Mine
¡¨ etc. God¡¦s people are His property
His jewels.
In the day to which they are looking forward
He will own them as His. Not make
them His
but declare them to be His. (G. Maxwell
B. A.)
The inner circle of Church
life
When Napoleon retreated
from Moscow
a large part of his army perished in the cold and snow. When night
came
a body of troops would kindle a little fire as best they could
and then
lots would be cast for those who should occupy the places nearest the fire
and
the cold was so intense that those in the outermost rows would be found frozen
stiff in the morning. Now
in every Church
there are those who form the very
centre--a circle within a circle- gathering close to the person of Christ.
These enjoy the warmth of His spiritual presence
while those who content
themselves with living at a distance from Christ are soon chilled and frozen in
the keen atmosphere of worldliness which enswathes the Church. (Watchword.)
Spake often one to another.
Christian converse
We live in better times
than were those of Malachi. Among us the influence of religion is acknowledged
by the great majority of those with whom we associate. Placed then in more
favourable circumstances
do we imitate the example of the pious Israelites? Do
we speak one to another of the God whom we worship? It is true that
in the
present state of society
religious topics cannot be introduced upon every
occasion
or into every circle. Our Saviour Himself warned us against the folly
and the danger of such a practice. But alas! by many religious conversation is
regarded as an infringement upon the decencies of life; chilled with obstinate
silence; or almost rebuked with a sneer.
I. To those who
fear the Lord in sincerity and truth religious conversation is natural. What
dwells habitually in the mind
the lips will most frequently utter. The
profession of each individual
and his customary modes of thought
almost
irresistibly appear in his conversation. Shall the Christian be the only
exception to this general law? The tradesman selects with care
and addresses
with evident preference those to whom the secrets of his craft are known; with
whom he may plan the means of abridging his labour and increasing his gains.
And shall not the servants of Jesus Christ speak one to another of that work
which their great Master hath given them to do? The ¡§speech¡¨ even of a
licentious man ¡§bewrayeth¡¨ him. To those who fear the Lord
the most natural
subjects of conversation are those which religion supplies. By what
inexplicable prejudice do they refuse to speak one to another of their eternal
interests? In every other pursuit we seek eagerly the approbation of those whom
we value. The hope of their applause lightens our toil. Why should not the same
amiable feelings
the same endearing aids
attend religion also?
II. Religious
conversation is pleasant to those who fear the Lord in sincerity. What is there
sublime or amiable in the whole range of intellectual and moral speculation
with which religious feeling may not be united
and on which the conversation
of the pious may not with propriety and with advantage dwell? In this wide
range there is much that
while it advances our improvement
may minister also
to our delight. The subjects of religious conversation
in themselves
attractive and delightful
gain a new interest from the relation which connects
them with their Author
and from the prospects which
through the Gospel
we
are permitted to entertain. And our future destiny endears to us religious
conversation.
III. Religious
conversation is useful to those who fear the Lord in sincerity. The use fulness
of any employment is not to be judged of by its conformity to the laws of
fashion
its tendency to still the alarms of the suspicious
to avoid the sneer
of the fool; or by its pleasing effects at the moment
while its final issue is
bitter. Religious conversation may still be useful
although it may have been
made at times the mask of hypocrisy
or the tool of spiritual pride. If the
instrument in itself is valuable
the wise and the pious need not forego its
exercise
though knaves have abused
and fools have misapplied it. The uses of
conversation in our intellectual pursuits are acknowledged and sought with
avidity. In pro portion to the importance of the subjects about which religious
conversation is employed
its usefulness increases. Happy would society be
and
rapid our improvement
were we to receive as a national law the precept which
was given to Israel of old
and made religion at once a theme of instruction
and delight! Of that time let us hasten the approach
so far as our influence
and example may extend. (A. Brunton
D. D.)
Religious conversation
It is the tendency of our
time to decry what is called religious conversation. It is in great disrepute
with those who desire to be thought sensible men; and
as a matter of fact
it
has become almost extinct
except in certain narrow circles
where it survives
in a form by no means calculated to attract others towards it. Many of those
who most fail in making religious conversation profitable
have yet a good
object in view in their attempts to cherish it. Many good motives have prompted
the endeavour to impart a more decidedly Christian character to the language of
society. But a failure it has often been. What with the difficulty of
expressing in words the deepest feelings; what with the risk of overstating
and of misstating
impressions which
to be worth anything
must be exact
neither more nor less nor other than the precise truth; what with the ambiguity
which hangs about so many characters as to their real decision for good
and
the danger of saying before any that for which they may be unprepared or
disinclined; what with the weariness of mind and body under which most men
enter into society
and their consequent indisposition for such efforts of
thought as are involved in the discussion of what we call serious subjects;
what with the just delicacy which teaches them to refrain from the obtrusion of
private thoughts upon any heart but their own
and the just dread too of
seeming to any to be other or better than they are: the result of all these
and numberless other influences
is generally the same
namely
that the
mention of religion is kept out of our daily intercourse with one another.
Nevertheless
the text
amongst other passages of Scripture
forbids us to rest
satisfied with a general absence of all reference to those things which
whether in youth or in age
are the only safety
the only happiness
and the
only life of the soul. ¡§Then.¡¨ The context tells us that the time spoken of was
an evil time. So prevalent was sin
so bold
and apparently so prosperous
that
people were beginning to say
¡§It is vain to serve God.¡¨ What profit is it that
we have tried to serve Him
and have walked carefully and even mournfully
before the Lord? This was a very short-sighted and a very wrong judgment; but
it is one which even good men are prone to fall into
when they compare their
own present comfort and disparagement with the apparent triumph and happiness
of the ungodly. Mark the one characteristic of these people--they ¡§feared the
Lord.¡¨ There are two kinds of fear
the servile and the filial; that kind which
consists in dread
and that kind which consists in awe. It is a short and
sufficient description of the good in any congregation
that they ¡§fear God.¡¨
In times of difficulty and discouragement they ¡§spake often one to another.¡¨
They tried the experiment of sympathy
of combined counsel
and combined action
too. The meaning of the ¡§Church¡¨ is
that God would give us in association a
strength and comfort which we cannot find in isolation; that He would have us
strengthen our brethren
and be strengthened in turn by our brethren
in the
exercise of united acts of worship
and still more in the recognition at all
times of a tie of friendship and of brotherhood which all must possess who have
indeed one heavenly Father
one Divine Saviour
and one Holy Spirit. We do not
half use these helps and strengths with which God has provided us. Here I would
place the beginning of religious conversation. Here
in God¡¦s worship.
Those
who have heartily prayed together
praised God together
listened to God¡¦s Word
together
cannot go forth
to neglect one another
to oppress one another
to
tempi one another
without such a sense of guilt in doing so as would be
absolutely intolerable. When it is once made present to your minds as a great
object
that all should lead blameless Christian lives
and that all should at
last see God
many other ways will suggest themselves
besides this
in which
those who fear the Lord may speak often one to another. It may be done in the
privacy of true friendship
when to one faithful ear you can confide something
of your personal difficulties and temptations
and exchange that sympathy which
is always strengthening even where it may seem to be rather the confession of
weakness. ¡§The Lord hearkened and heard it.¡¨ If there are any--may there be
many--who can think with comfort of that record of words spoken in His love and
fear
must not others tremble when they think of their words? Who has been the
better for our possess ing the gift of speech? Let us judge ourselves
one and
all
for indeed we have cause to do so
if perhaps in God¡¦s great mercy we may
not be judged. Let us remember
one and all
who said that for every idle word
which men should speak they should give account in the day of judgment. Of all
the sayings written down from His lips in the book of God
none surely is so
terrible in its sound as that which declares
¡§By thy words thou shalt be
justified
and by thy words thou shalt be condemned.¡¨ (C. J. Vaughan
D. D.)
Christian intercourse
Few persons are so unhappy
as to be ignorant of the value of social intercourse
and as not to have
realised its influence in heightening the enjoyments of human life
and
mitigating its sorrows. This pleasure
like every other
is refined and
elevated by the mutual experience of personal religion. Convinced that a free
social intercourse
of a spiritual and experimental character
among Christians
may be highly subservient to their advancement in religion
it is proposed to
offer a few remarks adapted to direct its exercise and to promote its
cultivation.
I. The right
exercise of spiritual intercourse among Christians.
1. The persons with whom it should be held. It should for the most
part be restricted to those whom we can regard as the subjects of renewing
grace. They who ¡§feared God¡¨ spake to one another. On experimental religion
those who have never felt its power can have nothing to communicate; nor are
they in general likely to feel any particular interest in the views of those
who have. Free interchange of sentiment is not advisable indiscriminately with
all who fear God.
II. The subjects
such intercourse may profitably embrace.
1. The peculiar spiritual or providential dispensations of which we
may be the subjects. The proofs our own experience has furnished of the
efficacy of prayer.
2. Subjects which have been brought before us in the public services
of the sanctuary
or in the private perusal of the Word of God.
3. The general state of religion
more especially in our own neighbourhood
and communion
and the means by which we may individually aid in its
advancement.
III. The seasons at
which such intercourse may be appropriately entered on. ¡§Spake often.¡¨ The
expression seems to imply that they took every opportunity
in the ordinary
associations of friendship
to direct the attention of each other to sacred
subjects. In conclusion
some considerations to enforce the cultivation of
spiritual intercourse.
1. Such exercises have been attended by evident indications of Divine
approbation.
2. Such intercourse is essential to the right exercise of Christian
sympathy and affection.
3. It will be found highly conducive to our own spiritual advantage.
Points in our experience we have thought fatally peculiar we shall find common
to others as well; we may gain relief where they found it
we may learn to shun
the snares by which they were endangered
and to pursue the means by which
their progress in the Divine life has been promoted. (Essex Remembrancer.)
Christian conversation -
I. It pleases god.
It is plainly indicated that God is pleased when His people talk to each other
tenderly about Him
that He listens
and not only listens
but makes record for
future reward of all those who are so lovingly loyal. Why are Christians to-day
so dumb? Love is not a dumb or silent thing. Love speaks. Then why these sealed
lips? God listens while His children fondly talk of Him. He loves to see
gratitude in our hearts; it greatly pleases Him to hear us talking one to
another about His goodness.
II. It blesses us.
Nothing does one¡¦s own heart so much good as speaking kindly of another.
Expressing love ever increases it.
III. It blesses
others. There are too many dumb Christians; for there is a vast power for good
in our tongues if we will but use them aright. Many a soul has been led to
Christ through the good words dropped in Christian conversation. (G. B. F.
Hallock.)
Christian communion
encouraged
I. The characters
indicated.
1. They feared the Lord. There is a ¡§slavish¡¨ fear
distinguished
from ¡§filial¡¨ fear. In the language of the Old Testament
the ¡§fear of the
Lord¡¨ means what may be called the entire religious principle
or the whole of
inward religion.
2. They thought upon the name of the Lord. Names are signs used to
distinguish one person from another. Usually they are arbitrary signs. But ¡§the
name of the Lord¡¨ expresses the essential qualities of His nature. Some of the
names of God are Rock
Strength
Shepherd
Father
King.
3. They spake often one to another. On what particular subject we must
gather from the circumstances of the case. They must have spoken of God¡¦s
gracious dealings with them; of the oppositions they had to encounter; the
deliverances they had experienced. They spake often
in ways of instruction
admonition
and encouragement.
II. The advantages
enjoyed by those characters.
1. Divine approbation. ¡§The Lord hearkened and heard.¡¨ He deigned to
listen.
2. Divine security. ¡§ A book of remembrance was written.¡¨ There was
an imperishable impression of their case on the mind of God Himself.
3. Divine promise. ¡§They shall be Mine
¡¨ etc.
Religious conversation
recommended
I. The disposition
and behaviour of these pious persons in a time of prevailing irreligion. Their
general character is that they ¡§feared the Lord.¡¨ As the general fruit of that
Divine principle ruling in their hearts
they ¡§spake often one to another.¡¨ The
subject of their conversation was the same with that of their thoughts
the
name of God and His ways. As agreement in principles and affections
an union
of interests and designs: naturally begets friendship amongst men
and is the
foundation of mutual freedom in communicating their thoughts to each other
so
true religion particularly is the firmest bond of union
the strongest and
noblest cement of a lasting amity. There is
too
a good deal of reason why
good men should speak often one to another in a time of abounding iniquity
because it is a means of strengthening the good dispositions which remain in
themselves
and which otherwise may be in danger of being weakened and of
perishing at last. As religion more than anything else in the mind labourcth
against opposition both from temptations without and our own infirmities
it
needs and receives peculiar benefit by the affectionate counsel of pious
friends; and evil communication doth not more tend to corrupt good manners than
good communication doth further to purify and raise them to perfection.
Therefore Christians are earnestly exhorted by the sacred writers to be aiding
and assisting to each other in this respect (Hebrews 3:12-13). We see
then
the true reason of Christians¡¦ shyness in
speaking one to another upon the affairs of religion
which is the faulty
omission of a very important duty
an excellent means of increasing piety and
virtue; and it is no otherwise to be accounted for than by the weakness of good
affections. Great prudence is to be used in discoursing on religious subjects
and the tempers of men carefully considered
lest an indiscreet freedom be
attended with bad consequences
and sacred things be exposed to the contempt of
the profane.
II. The
distinguishing regard god shows to them. He observes them attentively; they are
at all times the objects of His peculiar care
and shall at last be highly
honoured and happy in His favour. The figurative way of speaking is not
intended to signify that God has any need of external evidence or means of
finding out the truth: since at one direct view He beholds the most remote and most
secret things. By Him actions are weighed He has a more perfect knowledge than men can possibly have
by the strictest inquiry they can make. This intimacy of Divine knowledge
of our very thoughts and most private communications with friends is to religious
minds of the greatest moment to their comfort and support under their
difficulties
and a powerful motive to preserve stedfastness in true piety.
God¡¦s distinguishing regard is shown in His keeping ¡§a book of remembrance.¡¨
This is but after the manner of men
to show the infallible security of the
Divine promises made in favour of the righteous
and the reward which shall be
adjudged to them
fully proportioned
nay greatly exceeding
all the good they
have done. God hath no need of registers which human governments have recourse
to. God knows all past and future as well as present with equal clearness. The
¡§book of remembrance¡¨ suggests His special notice of the conduct of His
faithful servants
His keeping their actions in mind
and the undiminished perspicuity
of His righteousness and goodness in all His proceedings towards them. Another
instance of God¡¦s distinguishing
regard
is the promise that they shall be
His when He maketh up His jewels. Reference is to the appointed day of account.
God will then most eminently make up His jewels
when He gathers the general
assembly and Church of the first-born whose names are written in heaven. There
are some differences between the conditions of men even in this world made by
the interposition of God Himself as righteous Governor
which may be
comprehended in His making up His jewels. It is now that God hath such pity for
them that fear Him as to preserve them from many snares and calamities to which
they are liable
and spare them as a father spareth his son. (J. Abernethy
M. A.)
The communion of saints
However abandoned and
wicked a people or nation may be
nevertheless God has reserved to Himself a
seed to serve Him
a people to show forth His glory. The period to which the
text alludes may be considered emblematical of the times in which we live; and
it should be our object
as the professed people of God
to imitate the example
of those who are so honourably mentioned by the prophet in the words before us.
I. The description
here given of the people of God.
1. They are said to ¡§fear the Lord.¡¨ In order that we may fear the
Lord we must know Him. The fear meant is that reverential
affectionate fear of
God which is produced in the heart of the believer by the Holy Spirit.
2. They are those who meditate upon Him. ¡§In the multitude of their
thoughts within them His comforts delight their soul.¡¨
3. They are those who hold communion one with another. They
¡§considered one another
to provoke unto love and good works.¡¨ We can imagine
them saying
¡§Come
all ye that fear the Lord
and we will tell you what He
hath done for our souls.¡¨
II. The approbation
which God here testifies of his people.
1. He testifies His approbation by paying attention to their
occupations.
2. By granting them a share in His remembrance.
3. By promising to recognise and spare them at the final day. ¡§They
shall be Mine when I make up My jewels.¡¨ God even speaks of them as His ¡§sons.¡¨
Do we possess the characteristics which are here given of the people of God?
May God
in His infinite mercy
place His fear within our hearts
and then the
gracious promise of the text shall be ours. (Henry Cleare.)
Religious fellowship
I. Religious
fellowship calls into exercise the highest sympathies of being. While men
converse on secular subjects the fountain of their spiritual nature is sealed.
When the topic is practical Christianity
the hidden individuality discloses
its proportions
and you become acquainted with the genuine nature of the
speaker. Three facts in relation to religious men.
1. They have the common centre of attraction. ¡§They that feared the
Lord.¡¨ On the subject of experimental godliness all Christians can speak.
Assemble round the manger of Bethlehem or the Cross of Calvary
and even the
most untutored tongue is stirred to eloquence or music.
2. They have corresponding spiritual experiences. Every student of
his own heart has been amazed and delighted to discover the harmony of
religious feelings which exists throughout the Church.
3. They enjoy the inspiration of a common hope. They speak of their
joint inheritance without any feeling of envy. The ¡§fear ¡§ here is that which
filial reverence so properly inspires. The child of God fears lest he should
wound love so sensitive
or insult purity so dazzling; his fear relates less to
the power that might crush him than to the mercy which has saved him.
II. Religious
fellowship attracts the benignant notice of God. Learn--
1. The proximity of the Divine ear. God has so constructed the
universe that every whisper in its remotest region resounds in the palace of
Deity. Wondrous ear! The thunders of celestial song
the plaintive notes of
sorrow
the sighings of secret worship
the cries of extremity
and the
doxologies of gratitude all force their way to that centre. Thy prayer will not
ascend in vain.
2. The Divine record of human deeds. ¡§A book of remembrance.¡¨ There
is a registry of names in heaven. Every man who ¡§spake¡¨ will find his name
inscribed in the chronicles of the sky.
III. Religious
fellowship necessitates a contemplation of the sublimest subjects. ¡§That
thought upon His name.¡¨ Can you indicate a subject of more thrilling interest?
Is boundless power sublime? The name of God is the expression of Omnipotence.
Is infinite wisdom sublime? The name of God is the expression of Omniscience.
Is there aught of sublimity in inimitable love? The name of God is the
representative of ever-during and disinterested affection. There is no
common-place in religion. The moment you mention the name of God you rise into
the loftiest region of sublimity! Religious fellowship involves the highest
style of conversation.
IV. Religious
fellowship will be distinguished by the most glorious results. ¡§They shall be
Mine.¡¨ ¡§I will spare them.¡¨
1. The qualification for these honours is entirely moral. All that is
said of these people is
¡§They feared the Lord.¡¨ ¡§They thought on His name.¡¨
2. There is an appointed day of classification. God has jewels even amid
the ruins of this shattered and degraded world.
Concerning the fellowship
indicated
four facts are clear.
1. It was cultivated with much frequency. ¡§Spake often.¡¨
2. Its subjects are undiminished in sublimity.
3. It is demanded in circumstances no less exacting than those
indicated in the context.
4. It has lost none of its attractiveness in the Divine estimation. The
world may turn a deaf ear to your spiritual intercourse
hut the Lord will
hearken and preserve
a memorial of your godly fellowship. (Joseph Parker
D. D.)
Christian intercourse
In these days religion is
spoken of controversially
historically
and politically. But let religion be
introduced and treated experimentally
then it is at once undervalued. If any
person venture to speak of the Lord¡¦s dealings with his soul
then the subject
either excites ridicule amongst the company
or draws down upon the speaker the
contemptuous pity of every hearer. This is the common course of things
but it
is not universally so. Even in the days of the text there was a remnant of
those who loved to speak of spiritual things
and to speak of them spiritually.
I. The parties
described. Those who ¡§feared the Lord.¡¨ Not with that slavish fear which exists
in the minds of those who love sin
indulge in sin
and then only tremble when
they think of the wages of sin. Reference is to those who
looking upon God as
a Father
reverence Him and love Him
and would prefer themselves suffering any
loss to offending One who had conferred such inestimable blessings on them. The
true filial fear of God implies a correct knowledge of God¡¦s dealings with us
of His demands upon our affections
of His love as manifested in Christ
of the
way of salvation
and the necessity of holiness. It implies also a willing
obedience to God¡¦s commandments
a thankful acceptance of God¡¦s invitations
and a grateful endeavour to conform to the image
of Jesus Christ. It also
signifies an earnest desire to do everything to the praise and glory of God.
They who fear the Lord are men who
making a profession of religion
mean what
they say and say what they mean.
II. Their conduct.
¡§Spake often one to another.¡¨ Man is a social being. Few things contribute more
to the encouragement of selfishness than solitude; and nothing is more opposed
to the whole spirit of true religion than selfishness. If God has vouchsafed
unto us the light of the glorious Gospel of Jesus Christ we are neither
nationally nor individually at liberty to hide that light under a bushel.
Enforce the duty of religious conversation.
1. From the danger which naturally follows idle conversation. Idle
words are sinful in themselves
and extremely sinful in their tendency. But
what is the character of the common conversation of the day?
2. Our conversation is a test of the state of the heart. ¡§Out of the
abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh.¡¨ This is literally true. Illustrate
by the man of pleasure
who talks about his sport; or the politician
who talks
about his politics. Why
then should any one condemn the zeal of the man of
God
who would speak of the Lord¡¦s dealings with his soul?
3. We have the positive injunction of the Word of God. ¡§Let your
speech be always with grace
seasoned with salt.¡¨ The duty is specially
insisted on again and again in the Scriptures. The value of experimental
conversation is incalculable. Yet it must be confessed that silence upon
experimental religion is generally practised.
III. The reward. The
Lord ¡§noted it down in a book of remembrance.¡¨ In the great day
to your
infinite surprise
you will find words recalled to your mind long since
forgotten by yourselves
but fresh as ever in the remembrance of that loving Father
with whom we have to do. By way of caution let me say
do not think you must be
safe because you speak upon religion. Though every converted man will speak of
Christ
not every one who speaks of Christ is converted. Speaking upon religion
without feeling is nothing less than hypocrisy. It seldom deceives man
It
never deceives God. (Montagu Villiers
M. A.)
Discourse
Even in the most
degenerate ages God never suffered the light of truth to be completely banished
from the earth. We observe also
that where and when sinners have been most
determined in their opposition to God
the servants of God have ever been most
bold and resolute.
1. We learn from the words of the text that it is the duty of
Christians at all times to stand by and support each other
especially in times
of abounding iniquity. This was the conduct of these Jewish servants of God
and was highly approved of by the Almighty. The progress of sin has
in every
age
been advanced by the determined union of its supporters. God has appointed
a way by which all this may be met and overcome
namely
a determined union
amongst all the followers of the Lamb. Though the number of Christians has ever
been small in comparison of the Overwhelming masses of ungodly men
yet truth
and righteousness must in due time prevail
and the earth shall be full of the
knowledge of the Lord
as the waters cover the seas. There is no doubt a
decided and close union among real Christians
whether it is externally visible
or not. It is not only the duty of all Christians to feel a deep interest in
each other¡¦s prosperity
but they cannot be Christians without feeling such an
interest; and what is required is
that this union be as open and manifest as
it is real and unalterable. The ministers of truth are especially bound to
stand up for the cause of God in stormy times. Theirs is the post of
responsibility and danger. They are the standard-bearers. But still
all
Christians are bound
as they value God and truth
a glorious eternity
and the
immortal souls of their brethren
to aid their ministerial efforts
by speaking
often one to another words of encouragement
consolation and reproof. We might
go over all the different situations in which a Christian may be placed
and
show how the words of a friend may inspire with comfort; for as iron sharpeneth
iron
so doth the face of a man the countenance of his friend. In all
circumstances it is the duty of Christians to speak one to another; for a word
fitly spoken
how good it is; and this is one of the means appointed by God for
saving souls from death
and promoting the sanctification of His people.
2. God not merely remembers
but will reward those who thus promote
the salvation of His people
and retain their holiness amidst abounding
iniquity
and in illustrating this point the great advantage of holiness will
appear. Decided Christians are exceedingly precious in the sight of God. God
gives us to believe that when at last He comes down to exhibit to the world His
glorious majesty
and when all the princes of many generations must meet
together
and all the potentates of hell must come to see the glorious
spectacle--nothing fairer will there be
nothing more precious and beautiful
nothing which illustrates more the dignity and glory of His power
His love
and His attributes
than the members of the Christian Church
fair and
glorious
without spot or wrinkle
or any such thing. Or take the other figure.
We all know how tender is the affection of parents for their children. It
reigns amongst all the creatures of God. Even the utmost cruelty
the most base
ingratitude
is unable to quench a father¡¦s love. And the eternal Jehovah gives
us to believe that
as parents write the names of their children in their
sacred books
so He writes the names of His on the palms of His hands; they are
ever before Him. ¡§I will spare them as a man spareth his son that serveth him.¡¨
The time is fast approaching when the reign of delusion will end for ever; when
this strange scene
in which holiness is oppressed and sin apparently
triumphant
shall change
light coming out of darkness
order out of confusion
the wicked being driven away in their wickedness
the chosen ones of God
brought forth from their obscurity
that they may shine as the jewels in our
Saviour¡¦s crown
as the stars for ever and ever. (James Begg
A. M.)
¡§Speaking to one another¡¨
of holy things
These persons speak of God
and God¡¦s dealings
because this is the subject they are thinking upon; because
their hearts are full of God and His doings; because they reverence and fear God.
How many thus spoke to one another in Malachi¡¦s days we do not know. If it was
the duty of God¡¦s servants
before the appearing of Christ
thus to keep up
their hopes and strengthen one another
ought not God¡¦s servants
now that He
has appeared
now to speak to one another about the performances and promises
of Christ? That surely is our duty. If our hearts are full of Christ
can we
help talking about Christ to those with whom we constantly live? The speaking
about God and Christ
about religion and heaven
I am recommending
is the
speaking of them in plain
natural
hearty language; the speaking of them
because you think of them
and feel deeply their importance. To speak about
these things in phrases imitated from others is a vile and almost profane
practice; it is certain to lead to self-deceit
and the mistake of talking for
doing
of sounds for realities
of lip-religion for heart religion. No talking
comes from the heart
or goes to the heart
that is not plain
natural
and
unforced. Regularly maintained silence is impossible if you feel deeply. Ii you
are regularly silent
you do not feel deeply. (T. K. Arnold.)
Christian fellowship in a
backsliding Church
The temple was built when
Malachi wrote
and the Divine ordinances were established there; but few were
devout and sincere worshippers. The priests were given to secularising
tendencies; many professed worshippers were guilty of sacrilege. This is a dark
picture. It is relieved by the few ¡§zealous for the Lord of hosts.¡¨ These
by
their invincible faith in God
by the oneness of their unity
and by the
holiness and frequency of their fellowship
rebuked the infidelity of the
period.
I. True piety may
exist in a corrupt Church. This Church was corrupt. The priests were unfaithful
to their sacred trust. The people were guilty of treacherous dealing
of
departing from the Divine ordinance
and of seeking to justify this manifold
wickedness before God. But a few had genuine piety.
1. They ¡§feared the Lord.¡¨ This was a filial fear. The sinner fears
God because of the penal consequences of sin. The fear of the Christian springs
from different considerations
filial not slavish.
2. They ¡§thought upon His name.¡¨ Here we have devout meditation.
Our piety will be dwarfed
if this duty is neglected. ¡§His name.¡¨ Every appellation of Jehovah is
calculated to inspire the Christian with confidence and courage.
II. Christian
fellowship may be maintained in a degenerate society. These pious Jews had
communion with each other.
1. They ¡§spake one to another¡¨ words of encouragement. There may be
fellow ship without words. There is a heart fellowship. Then the countenance
speaks.
2. They spake ¡§often.¡¨ Then they must have assembled often. The
topics of conversation are not recorded
but ¡§out of the fulness of the heart the
mouth speaketh.¡¨
III. God encourages
the faithful to maintain Christian fellowship in the time of the Church¡¦s
degeneracy.
1. He delights in their fellowship; listens to and permanently
records their conversation.
2. He rewards with present security and eternal salvation. They are
God¡¦s ¡§jewels ¡§ in the highest sense
who are faithful when many in the Church
backslide. (E. D. Solomon.)
Christian friendship
I. The times of
malachi. The nation had sunk into a state of political degradation
and had
become successively subject to the Persians
Syrians
Romans. It is precisely
that political state in which national virtues do not thrive
and national
decay is sure. Illustrate--Italy
Spain. There was a want of unity
manhood
and simple virtues. It was a state in which there was no visible Divine
interference. Except this solitary voice of Malachi
prophecy had hushed her
harp. What was given to Israel in that period? Retrospect
in the sublime past
which God had given her for her experience. Prospect
in the expectation of
better times. And between these two there was a pause. They were left by God to
use the grace and knowledge
already given by Him. This is parallel to God¡¦s usual modes of dealing. A pause
after every revelation until the next. So in the natural world
so in human
life; between its marked lessons there is a pause in which we live upon past
experience--looking back and looking on. We live in the world¡¦s fourth great
pause. Miracles have ceased. Prophecy is silent. The Son of God is ascended. Apostles
are no longer here to apply infallible judgment to each new circumstance as it
arises. We are left to the great Gospel principles which have been already
given
and which are to be our food till the next flood of God¡¦s Spirit
the
next revelation--that which is known as the Second Advent.
II. The conduct of
different classes in these evil times.
1. Some lived recklessly.
2. Others lived uselessly
because despairingly.
3. A few compared with one another their hopes
and sought strength
in Christian communion and fellowship.
This communion of saints
is twofold: it includes church fellowship and personal friendships. Christian
friendship is a blessing
as the interchange of Christian hope and Christian
feeling. And it is a mighty instrument in guarding against temptation. It is a
safeguard in the way of example
and also a standard of opinion. Cultivate
familiar intimacy only with those who love God and good. (F. W. Robertson.)
Christian friendship
To the majority of the
nation of Israel God seemed to have utterly forsaken His people
and few
believed Malachi as he faithfully proclaimed God¡¦s intention of sending a
Messenger
a Refiner
a Purifier
in the person of the Messiah
who was to
fulfil the prophecies of the last and of all previous prophets. This prevailing
unbelief was the cause
as it always is
of widespread wickedness. Malachi¡¦s
picture of his time is a dark one. Nevertheless
a remnant was left. A few did
believe in the coming of Christ
and lived in preparation for the Refiner¡¦s
fire. What were the means which
by God¡¦s grace
enabled them to resist the
temptations of an unbelieving and a wicked generation? Holy friendship. Knowing
that union is strength in religious as well as in secular things
they formed
close friendships one with another
and often spoke together of their hopes and
fears. In forming friendships
young people would do well to remember that the
friend ship of the bad
or of those who never try to live at all above their
world
is enmity against God. Another rule is not to choose friends on a low
principle and from a low motive. The best definition of a friend is
¡§He who
makes you do what you can.¡¨ It is by their unconscious influence that friends
help every moment to mar or make our characters. Our Lord did not so much enjoin
it as take it for granted that His followers would always strengthen and
encourage each other by praying and speaking together. Those
who are
Christians in earnest gradually lead one another on to higher views of life and
duty; a know ledge of their mutual faults makes them unreserved to each other;
they are not afraid of saying all that is in their hearts; they make known to
each other their particular difficulties and temptations; they feel that they
are engaged in the same struggle; and each is often able to give assistance to
the other on one point
whilst by others he may himself require to be aided in
his turn. (E. J. Hardy
M. A.)
Religious conversation
There was something
even
in those times
which is worthy of our imitation. They spake of religion
of
God and duty. The subject in which men have a common interest is religion. The
subject is all-important and momentous. It is important as our intellectual and
immortal nature. If it becomes us to speak often to one another on the business
of this fleeting life
it much more becomes us to speak often one to another on
the business of a life that will never end. But notwithstanding the importance
of religion
there is comparatively little religious conversation. Much of what
has been so termed has been perverted. It has been worn as a mask by hypocrisy.
It has cherished and manifested the complacency of spiritual pride. It has
served as a vehicle for denunciation and anathematising to bigotry and
intolerance. It has fostered the religion of the fancy
cold in heart and
powerless in conduct. Then in the domestic circle
in the confidential hour
let religion have its place. Conversation has great influence upon conduct. But
let us not forget that ¡§for everything there is a season.¡¨ We are at all seasons
to be religious; but there are times when religious topics may not be well
introduced. While the Christian should watch for opportunities to advance the
cause of religion
he should be careful not to expose it to the ribaldry of
profaneness or the sneer of folly. (C. Lowell.)
Religious conversation an
evidence of the general Christian temper and spirit
In these words we have it
plainly signified to us--
I. That serious
conference amongst good persons is peculiarly needful in thoughtless and
irreligious times. If we express no concern for the interests of piety and
virtue in our words we shall be justly suspected of having but little in our
thoughts. We should learn to judge of ourselves by our common talk
as well as
by our actions. By speaking seriously on proper occasions we shall bind
ourselves to act so
else the inconsistency will shame us. We are strangely apt
to grow languid and fiat in our good inclinations; it is therefore important
that we should stir up each other
which a word in season or a mere hint may do
surprisingly. Even where we can receive little instruction we may enjoy great
satisfaction from intimacy of acquaintance with those who think and act and
hope and expect as we do. Some society we must have. On seeking that of good
persons we shall have less need to spend much of our time with the bad; and be less hurt
by that portion which we are obliged to give up to them. It is not necessary
that the whole conversation of religious persons
when they are together
be on
the subject of religion. The bare choice of such company and acquaintance is
of itself
a mutual incitement to persevere and be active. Their discourse
on
every subject
will be regulated by the laws of religion. But we need not be so
shy
as we commonly are
on the head of religion.
II. That God
observes
and will reward it. He hears indeed everything
and forgets nothing.
The prophet means that He takes¡¦s gracious notice of this particularly
among
other good actions of His servants. Persons may
by concealing to which side they
belong
escape some little persecution
and secure some little interests; but
while the disposer of all things gives them their desire in these respects
He
sends leanness into their souls. Our religion is not to be dissembled but
avowed. Application to present occasion. Beneficial as pious discourse and
consultation is in general
the benefit may both be increased to ourselves and
to others by our uniting into regular societies for the more constant inter
course of mutual edification and support of religious behaviour. (Archbishop
Becker.)
The faithful in dark days
History has few darker
pictures than the closing scenes of the Jewish dispensation. Reading the
record
we watch the death agony of s world. Judaism
like all noble things
which have abased and degraded themselves
died a hard and terrible death. The
heathen world was full enough of suffering; but its anguish was unto life
however sharp the birth pangs; the anguish of the Jewish state was unto death
and fearful were the throes. Malachi lived when the nation was far advanced on
the apostate¡¦s path. The next great act in the Divine drama would be the coming of
the great and terrible ¡§day of the Lord.¡¨ But amidst the dissolute and
reprobate throng there were a few men of Divine mould; like the soul in the
flesh
they kept it from rotting utterly. In the darkest hours of human history
God is never without a few to serve Him; the more loyally
the more intensely
because of the impiety and profligacy around. There are but a few in any age
that live after the divinest pattern; whose springs are all in God
whose hopes
are all in heaven; who know that their mission in the world is ministry; who
live
like Christ
that they may bless and save. Such have a communion with the
Lord
and with each other
of which the world knows nothing. Godliness is here
presented as the firm basis of confederation and communion. The godly are truly
confederate
and they alone. There is no purer joy than that which springs from
the discovery of like-mindedness
mind meeting mind
and heart meeting heart in
sympathy. Man yearns to be con federate with man. There is but one
confederation which is real and solid to the depths
the confederation of godly
souls for godly ends. All other combinations perish. In every evil confederation
there is the principle of discord. There is schism in every unholy alliance.
This is the godly enterprise of every age
to demonstrate the vital force of
godly confederacy. Such know what speech means. Speech
like friendship
is
essentially holy
and lends not all its strength to the uses of sin. Evil
cannot speak out. The faithful can speak and speak out; their words ring true
as the metal of their own spirits. They speak often one to another; their
speech fans the flame of love and resolution
and lays up for the sterner times
of trial rich stores of consolation and hope. ¡§Nor are we left to guess at
their themes. They thought upon His name; the reality of the existence
and the
reign of the righteous and almighty Lord.
1. His holy name.
2. His awful name.
3. His precious promises.
4. His immutable truth.
Thus they strengthened
themselves. Thus they made confederacy and communion; a confederacy which did
not perish in the wreck
but was prolonged through ages
and brought forth out
of its bosom the promised Messiah
the Saviour of the world. (Baldwin Brown
B. A.)
Christians in conversation
They that feared the Lord
spake often one with another. It is strange
one has said
that what is every
man¡¦s chief concern should be so few men¡¦s conversation. How we shrink from
talk about the soul and eternity
about the pilgrim way and the celestial city
about God and Christ! What a poor book Bunyan¡¦s great allegory would be
if the
travellers to Zion never had opened their hearts to each other as they paced the
King¡¦s high road. The book to which I owe so much had scarcely been worth the
reading. What a different life Bunyan himself would have led
if the Lord¡¦s
people had had nothing to say to one another about His grace to them. It was
you remember
the talk of three or four poor women sitting in the sun on
Bedford Street
who spake as if joy did make them speak
it was this which
convinced him that he was still outside the family and the fold of the Good
Shepherd. There may be listeners of whom I am not aware
when I recount the
great things my Saviour has done. There is one Listener of whom I can be sure.
The Lord hearkens and hears
and a book of remembrance is written before Him. (A.
Smellie.)
Christianity
a social
religion
When Wesley the great
preacher was returning to Oxford
tired and discouraged with his work
and with
strong leanings towards a life of seclusion
he travelled some miles to see a
¡§serious man.¡¨ ¡§ Sir
¡¨ said this person in words which Wesley never forgot
¡§you tell me you wish to serve God and go to heaven. Remember you cannot serve
Him alone
you must find companions and help them
the Bible knows nothing of
solitary religion.¡¨ Wesley joined the ¡§ Holy Club
¡¨ and his subsequent
institution of societies shows how apt a learner he was.
A book of remembrance was written.--
Memory
There is reason to
believe that memory never loses anything
but that it retains
and may
reproduce
when the right string is touched
every thought
impression
and
event of our whole past lives. The well-ascertained phenomena of delirium
insanity
and other unusual forms of consciousness
furnish ample demonstration
of this statement. In our usual state of mind
things do not indeed return to
us uncalled
nor yet do they come at once when sought
but obey certain laws of
suggestion or association
which retard the action of the memory
as the
balance-wheel does the motions of a watch. But in certain conditions of
consciousness
the balance-wheel is taken off
the usual laws of suggestion are
suspended
the full flow of memory takes the place of the scanty jet of
recollection
and the whole past rushes spontaneously upon the mind. But we
need not go beyond our own familiar experience to verify this view. Revisit
some scenes of early life
and what intensely vivid remembrances take shape
hue
and voice! The past never dies
though
in the common routine of life
we
have to a degree the keys of memory in our own hands
and may admit or exclude
recollections at pleasure. There are seasons
and those not rare
when
without
the power of choice
we are liable to inundations from the good or evil
the
sweet or bitter
of the past
promiscuously. In seasons of sorrow the past
always utters its voices. When the hand of providence is heavy upon us
if the
past has been stained with guilt
we need no inscription upon the wall to make
our knees smite together and our souls tremble. There is nothing
more true to
universal experience than the self-reproaching communings of Joseph¡¦s brethren
when they felt themselves surrounded by imminent perils in a strange land. A
vast amount of remorse mingles with human grief
and drugs to the utmost with
gall and wormwood the cup of sorrow. But compare
with the sad retrospect which
providence forces upon the guilty
the rich reminiscences which crowded Job¡¦s
mind
when health
riches
and children were all taken from him. Most of all
death
as it is passing the book of memory over to the register of eternity
rehearses its records in the ear fast closing to the outward world. Is it within
our power to lay up remembrances that will give peace and pleasure? It is not
events
but our own traits of character and conduct alone
that are capable of
giving us anguish in the remote retrospect. It is astonishing how smooth the
roughest ways of providence look at a little distance. If shadows gather about
our dying bed
they will be shadows of our negligencies
follies
and sins. But
if our lives have been faithful
devout
and loving
then will the remembrance
of what we were through the grace of God
and the testimony of a good
conscience glancing to and fro through the years that are gone
give peace and
triumph to our departing spirits
and enable us to feel that God is taking us
to a rest for which He had first fitted us. A recent German writer
in a
fictitious sketch
introduces a worthy youth as compiling a book of pleasant
experiences to be read for his comfort at the hour of death. Such a book it
concerns us all to write
not on paper
but on the surer and more lasting
tablet of a memory that cannot die. Show the bearing this view of memory has on
the doctrine of a future righteous retribution. St. John says: I saw the dead
both small and great
stand before God. And the books were opened
¡¨ etc. Out of
what books can they be thus judged
except those of memory
--books written by
themselves
but preserved by God
and opened at the solemn hour of death for
their acquittal or condemnation? If the past is to be thus brought to light
may not memory be the prime minister of God¡¦s retributive justice
--the worm
that never dies
the fire that is never quenched
in the sinner¡¦s soul
--the
peace of God
that passeth understanding
to the pure and faithful spirit? Of
the power of memory for good or evil
we have in this life ample experience
from the torn and scattered leaves of its book
with which recollection
furnishes us. Imagine the abandoned sinner full in the presence of his God
no
sentence passed upon him but that which he is constrained to pass upon himself
no fire let loose upon him
but that which memory can kindle. Memory isolates
him
makes him both afraid and ashamed to trust either God or man
bids him
dread the frown of the Almighty
and shrink from the scorn of his brethren.
Pass to the right hand of the Judge. Contemplate a truly humble
devout
exemplary Christian
with the holy thoughts and good deeds of a life of piety
spread out before him
not veiled
as they were on earth
by the self-abasement
of a lowly spirit
but sparkling in heaven¡¦s pure sunlight
seen of angels
owned by the benignant Redeemer
approved by God the Judge of all. Moreover
as
his earthly life is thus reviewed in heaven
he sees not only each act itself
but its happy
glorious
perhaps still widening and brightening results. Did he
sow a seed of humble charity? He sees not the seed
but the tree which has
sprung from it. Did he cast his bread upon the waters? He sees not the bread
but the hungering souls whom it has nourished. Did he labour
and pray
and
live
for the salvation of souls? He sees not his efforts
but their fruits
going forth it may be
even for the healing of the nations. But it may be said
the best of men have been
to a greater or less degree
sinners; and if memory
be perfect and entire
while the pious look back with pleasure on their good deeds
must not the remembrance of their folly and sin cloud their joy
and mingle
strains of sadness with their songs of rapture? But surely to the awakened
memory of the consistently virtuous
in the world to come
worthy and holy
thoughts and deeds must so occupy the foreground
as to throw follies and sins
completely into the shade. Then
too
against every disobedient purpose and act
there will be written in the book of memory the cancelling vows of contrition
that succeeded it
and the holy resolutions that forbade its repetition. The
sins of the exemplary and devout will be to them in heaven as the sins of our
infancy are to us now. If then a ¡§book of remembrance¡¨ is kept
how vigilant
the prospect of its pages being brought to light should make us--how prayerful
against secret faults--how watchful against besetting sins! (A. P.
Peabody.)
The book of remembrance
I. The saints¡¦
remembrance of god.
1. We have a common principle. The fear of the Lord was the bond that
united those to whom the prophet here makes allusion.
2. There was frequent communion. There was an oft and repeated
meeting of the faithful. We shall always find in the history of the Church of
Christ that the most pious have ever been earnest and persevering in their
public religious exercises.
3. We have a repeated confession. They spake of the things which
pertained to God. The only Father-confessor to whom we should make known our
wants
and confess our sins
is God. There was mutual instruction. There was
great sympathy aroused.
II. God¡¦s
remembrance of his saints.
1. Special acts of piety are specially remembered.
2. The Almighty does not pass by the doings of men without any regard
to the character of those doings. Our book of remembrance is being written. The
life we lead will meet us as a resurrection of forgotten acts. (H. G.
Parrish
B. A.)
God¡¦s book of remembrance
The prophet is here
speaking of the conduct and reward of those who remained faithful to God at a
time of great national apostasy. Such a time had
in the providence of God
been permitted to cast its dark shadow over the people of Israel. The course of
their history shows that the recurrence of certain evils brought on
as by
natural sequence
a repetition of punishment
or a fresh chastisement. Violated
law brought in due time its appropriate punishment; and in this way God¡¦s moral
government
as it were
rectified itself to the eyes of men. The transgressor
never got off with impunity; but the present seemed to be an exception. The
ungodly were allowed to go on in sin without calling down any token of Divine
displeasure. They even prospered in sin. God¡¦s people had begun to think the
service of God to be vanity. What profit had the righteous man in walking
mournfully before the Lord? The prosperity of the wicked became a stumbling-block
to the righteous. Those who continued faithful to God were perplexed when they
saw the success of sin
and so they met to hold mutual intercourse
and to
impart mutual encouragement. They would help each other to fathom the
providential mystery. Our short-sightedness keeps us from seeing beyond the
present
otherwise we would perceive a higher good than earthly greatness
and
true success would he tested not by outward conditions
but by moral character.
I. The conduct of
the faithful at a time of apostasy. Instead of envying at the wicked
and
bewailing their own condition
they met for mutual encouragement
and for the
defence of God¡¦s righteous dealings against blasphemers. Their object was not
only mutual encouragement
but the vindication of their God from the aspersions
cast upon His name. What a beautiful picture is this of Christian fellowship
and fidelity; and happily
even the darkest days of the Church have been
brightened by examples of a like kind. Illustrate--Catacombs
Waldenses
Covenanters
etc. God was subjecting these men who feared Him tea Divine test.
They took their united stand on common ground--the fear of God. At the peril of
their lives they bore testimony and were not ashamed. There are times when such
men are specially needed. Men to stand up for the defence of the truth; not
merely devout believers
but able apologists.
II. The Lord kept a
book of remembrance for recording the names and deeds of the faithful. In
speaking of a book
we do not insist on an actual volume. The expression is an
accommodation to our modes of speech. He who is Omniscient needs no book to
keep Him in mind of His people¡¦s services. Their deeds were as particularly
recorded as if actually written in a book. The object of this record is to form
the basis of judgment. According to what is written there
so will men be
rewarded or punished. Nothing will be left unnoticed that will add to the final
award. As a guarantee of the correct ness of every entry in that book
we are
assured that the Lord Himself hearkens and hears. Nothing will escape His
searching scrutiny. The contents of this book may be regarded as a sort of
moral diary
of which we ourselves are the unconscious recorders. By our
conduct we are supplying material for each impression made upon it. We
ourselves must be regarded as the writers. Surely this thought is fitted to
impress us with the solemnity of life! The impression once made
no power of
ours can blot it out. Seek
then
to do something that will keep the memory
fragrant when you are gone
something for which God will own you at last.
III. The reward
promised to the faithful. The faithful are likened to ¡§jewels
¡¨ and to ¡§sons.¡¨
The two ideas are ¡§preciousness¡¨ and ¡§likeness.¡¨ They who were once polluted
and impure are now as jewels
clean and bright
and they who were once rebels
have now become sons. A jewel is a precious stone
ranked by its owner among
his most valuable possessions. Its value depends partly on its nature
and
partly on the labour bestowed on it in the process of refinement. What has God
done for His people? They are now the crown-jewels of the King of kings. The
highest reward of all is
that God¡¦s faithful people will be owned as sons.
This involves that God¡¦s people will be like Him
and will be His heirs. The
furnace of discipline will manifest the likeness by consuming the unlikeness. (D.
Merson
M. A.
B. D.)
The Lord¡¦s book of
remembrance
The fidelity and
steadfastness of man must rest on the fidelity and steadfastness of God. ¡§ He
is faithful who hath promised
¡¨ is a principle which underlies the whole
relation of God the Redeemer to our race. We have considered the condition of
the faithful few in Malachi¡¦s dark days. The sadder their estate
the darker
the night around them
the more closely did they associate for communion and
concert. The Lord was not unobservant of them. It was the Lord for whom they
were enduring
who nerved them to endure. Three main features of description.
I. The book of
remembrance. Probably the rudiment of this idea is to be found in Ezra 6:1-5. There was a roll found
on a critical occasion
¡§in the place
which is in the province of the Medea
¡¨ the remembrance of which the Jews would
not willingly let die. What concerns us is the fundamental thought. It is
precisely what the Lord declared of old to Moses
¡§I know thee by name
and
thou hast found grace in My sight.¡¨ Those who
like all these men
stake all on
fidelity to God
are the upper ten thousand of the universe
the peerage of
heaven
throughout eternity. God knows them by name as living persons. As
friends He holds them dear. God¡¦s love is not for qualities
abstractions
any
more than man¡¦s. He caused to be written in His book of remembrance
not a catalogue
of their principles
but their names
their desideration
as living human
souls. Trampled in the mire on earth
their names should be read out in heaven.
II. The recognition
of their sonship. Perhaps the saddest thought of the righteous
in the midst of
an ungodly world
springs from the sense of their own imperfectness
the
feebleness of their witness
the languor of their zeal
the poverty of their
work. The word son--¡§his own son¡¨--reassures. A father¡¦s love wearies not and
wanes not; a child¡¦s feeblest efforts please him better than a stranger¡¦s
bravest work. ¡§He will spare them
¡¨ in the furnace of discipline; the Lord will
temper its fierceness. In the battlefield of life
the Lord will be their
strength and their shield. In the shadow of death
His rod and staff shall
comfort them there. ¡§They shall be Mine
¡¨--Mine for ever
¡§in the day when I
make up My jewels.¡¨
III. The day when
the book shall be brought forth. ¡§Thou shalt be recompensed at the resurrection
of the just¡¨ is God¡¦s answer to the cry of many a faithful
patient spirit
who
wins no recompense on earth but a cross. There is a life which can only be
justified at the resurrection of the just. There is a life which has its full
recompense here. ¡§But thou shalt be recompensed
¡¨ man of many tears
cares
and
sorrows
weary and heavy laden. Long have the gems been buried in dust and
darkness
encased in crusts of stone
enveloped in shrouds of vanity. The day
comes when the Lord shall rend the shroud and crush the crust to fragments
and
reveal His jewels before the universal gaze. (Baldwin Brown
B. A.)
And that thought upon His name.--
Love to the name of the
Lord
In a time of general
corruption
when the priests themselves had depraved the law
and were enemies
to true religion
and the common people were like them
there were a few of
another spirit. Observe their character--such as ¡§feared the Lord.¡¨ What they
did: ¡§spake often one to another.¡¨ They delighted in each other¡¦s good. How
their minds were employed: ¡§They thought upon His name.¡¨ They were concerned
for God¡¦s glory
and grieved over the dishonour of His name. What the Lord did
for them: ¡§He hearkened and heard.¡¨ It was ¡§written before Him
¡¨ according to
the custom of eastern kings
who kept records of all that was done for their
honour.
I. What is meant
by thinking on the name of the Lord in a way that He approves? This expression
is descriptive of the nature of true religion. What is repentance toward God
but thinking on His name with grief for having dishonoured it. What is faith in
Christ
but thinking on His name with delight
as revealed in the Gospel. What
is love to God
but thinking on His name affectionately
and with the highest
satisfaction. More especially
it includes an earnest and habitual concern for
God¡¦s cause and interest in the world
and for the spread of the Gospel.
1. If we think on the name of the Lord in a way that He approves
all
we do in religion will be directed to His glory.
2. We shall reckon no sacrifice too great for it.
3. We shall seek our own spiritual advantage in subordination to it.
If we take care of God¡¦s honour
He will take care of our peace.
II. In what manner
does God remember those who remember Him and think upon his name?
1. The Lord generally employs those who love His name as instruments
in promoting His glory.
2. In seeing His name glorified
they find their own reward.
3. Their labours shall be remembered for good in this life
and even
when they are gone to the grave.
4. At the last day the Judge will read out their names.
The Christian¡¦s thoughts
of God
and God¡¦s estimate of the Christian
I. What the
Christians of that day thought of God.
1. They ¡§feared the Lord.¡¨ In the Old Testament the true saints are
described
not as those who love God
but as those who fear Him. In the
New Testament saints are those who love God
rather than fear Him. The
fear of the Lord is often used to express the whole of real religion
both in the holy
affections which it communicates to the heart
and in the cheerful obedience
which it produces on the life. It should never be forgotten that everything in
religion is practical. Its great design is to conform us to the image of the
Son of God.
2. They ¡§spake often one to another.¡¨ No doubt they frequently
conversed about their recent deliverance from captivity. Sometimes they might
speak to each other in the language of caution. It frequently happens that
others can see dangers when we ourselves are blind to them. Our Lord sent forth
His disciples
two by two
that they might caution and encourage each other
We
are to bear one another¡¦s burdens; but it requires much wisdom and humility to
do this well. It is our duty
not only to administer reproof and caution
but
also to receive them in the same spirit. Sometimes they spoke to each other in
the language of encouragement. By conversation with our fellow-Christians
we
find out that no temptation has taken us but such as is common to men. God has chosen
all His people in the furnace of affliction. Christian conversation encourages
the heart. But
in intercourse of this kind
a peculiar delicacy and sanctity
of feeling must be maintained
or we shall injure rather than benefit each
other.
3. These people thought upon God¡¦s name. Our Saviour has told us
that ¡§where our treasure is
there will our hearts be also.¡¨ The bias of the
Christian¡¦s affections is heavenward.
II. What God
thought of them. He hearkened and heard. This means God attentively heard what
His people said of Him to each other. What is it to which the Lord listens? He
remembers His people. The saints are God¡¦s treasure. He spares them; rejoices
over them; sanctifies them. He will spare them in the great day. There is much
in this text encouraging to ministers
and much suggestive of self-inquiry. (George
Weight
B. A.)
Christian conversation
Bishop Thompson says
¡§Some Christians are like the rivers that flow into the Arctic Ocean--frozen
over at the mouth.¡¨ Have we not reason to suspect that the occasion in both
cases is the same--coldness?
I. Christian
conversation pleases god. It is plainly indicated that God is pleased when His
people talk to each other tenderly about Him; that He listens. Why are
Christians to-day so dumb? Love is not a dumb or silent thing. Love speaks. Why
this hesitation when we speak of religion? Does it not seem strangely
inconsistent in us? ¡§The Lord hearkened and heard it.¡¨ He listened while His
children fondly talked of Him. Does it not please you to overhear some kind
word spoken of yourself? Do not think your Heavenly Father indifferent to
praise. He loves to see gratitude in our hearts; it greatly pleases Him to hear
us talking one to
another about His goodness.
II. Christian
conversation blesses us. Nothing does one¡¦s own heart so much good as speaking
kindly of another. Expressing love ever increases it.
III. Christian
conversation blesses others. There are too many dumb Christians; for there is a
vast power in our tongues if we will but use them aright. Who can estimate the
power of kindly words to touch the heart and mould the life? (Pulpit
Treasury.)
The book of God¡¦s peers
This book of remembrance
like the jewels referred to in the next verse
was doubtless suggested by the
customs of ancient courts. The king used to bring out and display his jewels on
State occasions
and nearly
every Eastern monarch appointed an official
journalist to keep a record of passing events. He was called the Court
chronicler
and his business was to write the history of his times
especially
the notable names and incidents. There was little room for the annals of the
poor or for anything that touched the life of the common people. Now the
prophet lifts the thought above that Court chronicler and book to another Book
which is written before the King of kings
and he intimates that the doings
recorded there belong to a different class: socially
much lower; morally and
religiously
far higher. The pages of that other book are not devoted to the
men who fill the exalted stations and make a great display of wealth and power;
because
as the prophet tells us
in those times the high places were ruled by
injustice
immorality
and irreligion. But there were a few people whom the
searching eyes of God followed with tender love and approval
for the most part
obscure people
lost in the crowd
and remote from the world of fashion; people
whom the Court scribe would dismiss as so much dirt. But they were the only
objects of interest to the greater King
for they alone in those godless times
were living soberly
righteously
reverently
walking humbly in the fear of
God
keeping the old religious fires burning and bravely maintaining their hold
on faith and prayer
through obloquy and persecution. They were like the few in Sardis who had not
defiled their garments. Now
I need not tell you that this is not the only
mention in the sacred Scriptures of that Book of Remembrance. In fact
we hear
of it more or less all through the Bible. It appears as far back as Moses
who
spoke of those who are written in God¡¦s Book; it is found more than once in the
Psalms of David
who trusts that his very tears will be found written in the
Book; it occurs in Isaiah and in other minor prophets
and it is always
referred to
I think
as the Book which God keeps to record the doings and
perhaps the sufferings also of His faithful ones who are forgotten or despised by
the world. The thought is taken up and carried on by our blessed Lord Himself.
Jesus says
¡§Their names are written in heaven¡¨; and a dozen times at least in
the Epistles and the Apocalypse there is mention made of certain unrecognised
Christian workers
holy women and others
whose names are written in what is
called the Book of Life
or the Lamb¡¦s Book of Life.
I. I venture to
say to you this first
that that book of remembrance must by this time be a
ponderous and many-volumed library
if all the unchronicled workers and saints
have been written down in it
because they are a company which no man can
number. The saints whose names you find in the calendar and who figure in
Church history are comparatively few
and they were not always the best and
most saintly of their class. Some of them got canonised and admitted to the
calendar by favouritism of pope and cardinal
and by what we vulgarly call
backstairs influence
rather than by election and sanction of God. There were
ten thousand times more
and perhaps better
saints whose names are only in
heaven¡¦s calendar; in fact
the real history of God¡¦s kingdom has never been
written by any human pen. You read the so-called history of the Church
ecclesiastical history
as produced by the labours and researches of a Mosheim
or Neander
and it is often exceedingly unedifying reading and woefully
disappointing. If it were the story of Christ¡¦s Church
it ought to be in the
main the stow of lowly
self-forgetting
Christ-like men and women. Instead of
that
you find the greater part of those pages devoted to the record of
ambitions
envyings
strifes
heresies. You find there the carnal
the secular
and the worldly themes almost everywhere predominant. The true and beautiful story of the Church is
not written there or in any book which is accessible to us
it is only written
in God¡¦s Book of Remembrance; for surely the real makers and builders and
defenders of the Church have been in all ages the men and women who patiently
suffered for it
earnestly laboured for it
without thinking of gain or
distinction. Those in all ages have kept the Church alive
preserved it as the
salt of the earth
the light of the world. And yet they are not even known by
name. There were a few notable men
never to be forgotten--Cranmer
Latimer
Ridley
Hooker--but most of them were obscure--cobblers
bachelors
weavers
unlearned Bible readers
lay preachers--and beneath the notice of the scribe.
Their names are written in letters of glory in God¡¦s Book of Remembrance.
II. Now
so it has
been all through Church history. I venture to say to you
secondly
that the
same thing substantially is true to-day. Most of the noble and Christ-like
deeds--all but an infinitesimal part of them--have no chance whatever of getting
written down in any book except that unseen book on which the unseen hands are
busy. Most of the brave
humble
self-denying lives which are spent in the
service of Christ and humanity find no place whatever in the world¡¦s prints. I
should think you all know that it is not always the best things that get most
talked about; it is not always the grandest and divinest things that are pushed
into notoriety and reported. A prayer-meeting is never reported; at least
I
have never seen one reported. A round of visits among the sick
the sorrowful
and the dying--that never gets into print. A brave confession of Christ in the
midst of an unbelieving company--nobody thinks of writing that down. If you are
ambitious to have your names passed from mouth to mouth in the streets
and
printed in large type in all the public journals
there are various ways of
getting it done
some of them not too creditable. You can accomplish it by an
extraordinary display of genius
or an extraordinary display of folly
and one
will serve quite as well as the other. You won¡¦t do it by keeping the Ten
Commandments
but you may do it by breaking some of them.
III. Now
may I say
to you
lastly
that this cheering truth contained in our text is given to be
an incentive and an inspiration to all who are engaged in religious work
but
especially to the less known and to the utterly undistinguished among
them.--and they always form
as you know too well
the vast majority? Most of
you have to continue in well-doing without the least chance of flattering human
recognition. A few leaders in religious work do shine a little
perhaps
in the
public eye; that is
the generals in a great army are sometimes put on a
pedestal
and they gain a little glory
but the rank and file
the private
soldiers who do the rough marching
and most of the rough fighting too
there
is very little glory for them either in ordinary warfare or in the greater
warfare of the Captain of our salvation. It is very true of most of you
that
if you are anxious to gain human praise for your fidelity to Christ
and the
work you do in His name
you will be disappointed. Quiet devotion to the
service of the Lord Christ does not fetch the gallery
to say the least of it;
it does not bring plaudits from the pit. It is human genius that wins human
praise
or intellectual cleverness
sometimes mere showiness; it is smartness
that secures successes in the business world. The man who wins a walking match
or a motor-race
or a horse-race will win a hundred times more popular favour
for the time being than the man who spends his life as the Divine One did who
went about doing good. If in Christ¡¦s work men are dependent at all upon these
things they frequently fall into dejection. Now
just think what it means to
have your names and labours written in that Book of Remembrance. Well
it
certainly means this--though a vast number of people would be perfectly
astounded to hear it--it means that an earnest
zealous
Christ-loving
Christ-serving life
and its works of patience and faith
are deemed by heaven
the things best worth recording and best deserving to be kept in remembrance.
In those higher courts they are not absorbed and excited with the things that
we poor mortals go mad about. Possibly they are not so profoundly interested as
we are in the movements of presidents and rulers
in the startling speeches of
politicians
and in the prospects of political parties
and certainly not in
the revelations of the criminal court
the scandals of high life
and the
result of the latest pedestrian contest. No doubt heaven sees all these things
because nothing is hid from the all-watchful eyes
but they stir no buzz of
admiration in angelic circles
you may be sure. A young man in the city
steadfastly resisting its temptations and keeping himself undefiled for Jesus¡¦
sake; a maiden bringing her life and laying it at the Master¡¦s feet
and vowing
to love Him first and best; a girl in the shop or factory adorning her
Christian profession amidst unchristian workmates; a business man holding his
conscience and integrity amid all the shady doings and unveracities of the
market and commercial life: these are the things which the heavenly penmen note
down. We sometimes talk and
maybe
think that this Book of Remembrance--I have
often heard it referred to in that way--is kept to record the base and the evil
things: your own failures
the inconsistencies of your Christian life
the
darker things. I declare this: the book is never once referred to in that way in the
Bible. God has no wish
you may be sure
to keep a record of all failing and
bad things; He has no delight in beholding
dwelling upon them. He tells us
indeed
that when our sins are once forgiven He forgets them; they are cast
into the depths of the sea
and come into His mind no more. No
it is the fair
and the better things of the Christian life and labours that find a place in
that great book. (J. G. Greenhough.)
Verse 17
In that day when I make up
My Jewel.
The Lord¡¦s jewels
How much people think of
their jewels. Eastern people are even more fond of jewels than we are
and
Eastern ladies are even more lavishly decked with them. How people value their
jewels! They count them as their chiefest treasure
so God uses the figure to
make us feel how highly He thinks of us
His redeemed ones
who are more and
better to Him than men¡¦s jewels can be to them. I once knew a lady who was so
passionately fond of her jewels that
when the rest of the house hold went to
church
and the house was quiet
she would go up to her bedroom
lock the door
spread out all her pearls and diamonds upon the bed
and spend her time in
admiring them
one after another. Poor
foolish woman! She could not take them
with her through the grave. Our children are our jewels; the friends we love
are our jewels; those whom we try to bless and save become precious to us as
jewels. Then whom does God count among His jewels?
I. The penitent.
Who is humble before God. The publican in the temple was one of the Lord¡¦s
jewels.
II. The returning.
Who is a seeker after God. The prodigal was one of the Lord¡¦s jewels.
III. The
consecrated. Who is wholly God¡¦s. The apostle Paul was one of the Lord¡¦s
jewels. God will take care of his jewels now
and in the great day. See
Christ¡¦s prayer
¡§None of them is lost.¡¨ (Robert Tuck
B. A.)
Jewels
1. God¡¦s jewels--His people.
2. The means by which He collects them.
3. The period when He shall make them up.
The fear of God rewarded
The expression used by the
prophet conveys to us a strong idea of the pleasure which our Lord will Himself
experience in executing this office of ¡§making up His jewels.¡¨ He will then
¡§see of the travail of His soul
and be satisfied.¡¨ We trace the idea of
pleasure in the term ¡§jewels.¡¨ And they are His jewels
for He has bought them
with a price
and no less a price than that of His own most precious blood. The
idea of pleasure on His part in the performance of this work is completed in
the expression
¡§make up My jewels.¡¨ We see Him rejoicing that the time is
come
when to the gift of grace He may add that of glory; and finally exulting
that not one ¡§of all that the Father hath given Him¡¨ is wanting to His crown.
As if we might want something more closely and readily applicable than this
figurative language
He adds
¡§And I will spare them
as a man spareth his own
son that serveth him.¡¨ In what manner are they described
who are to be the
passive subjects of His mercy in that day? The first characteristic is that
they ¡§feared the Lord.¡¨ This fundamental grace of godly fear is the sure and
safe road to the higher attainments of love. All who will be His ¡§jewels¡¨ there
must fear Him in
some degree here
that they may love Him in perfection hereafter. To know
whether you fear Him
ask yourselves
and that with searching honesty
whether
you shrink from an evil thought; whether you strive manfully against your
imaginations when they set in the direction of lust
malice
or covetousness;
or willingly float down the current to certain distance
only taking pains to
avoid the last precipice towards which it leads. If you face Him with that holy
fear
which is the result of a living faith
you will prove it
not by your
thoughts and actions only
but by your words. ¡§Then they that feared the Lord
spoke often one to another.¡¨ To such God says
¡§They shall be Mine.¡¨ Is your
conversation such as to
warrant your entertaining a hope that you have an interest in this gracious
promise? (J. Marriot
A. M.)
Believers are the jewels
of Christ
I. God¡¦s regard
for his people. They are described as God¡¦s ¡§jewels
¡¨ therefore dear and valuable to
Him; those on whom He looks with complacency; they were dearly purchased
bought with a price
infinitely above all earthly treasures. He speaks of them
in an endearing manner as ¡§My jewels.¡¨ The text also gives another token of
Divine regard--His sparing mercy. Every parent will fully enter into the figure
here used
II. The time
appointed for the manifestation of this regard. ¡§In that day.¡¨ It betokens
either temporal visitation
the day of death
or the clay of judgment. Probably
the final clay is meant
when He will vouchsafe a peculiar manifestation of His
favour.
III. The security by
which this promise is confirmed. This security is not of man
but of God. ¡§They
shall be Mine.¡¨ (W. Mayers
A. M.)
Jehovah¡¦s jewels
I. The precious in
principle. Regard for the greatness of God. Obedience to the commands of God.
Dread of the punishment of God. Trust in the mercy of God. Fear of God is the
foundation of piety; it casts out all other fear.
II. The precious in
practice.
1. Frequent religious association. They often met together apart from
the world. An expression of spiritual separation from evil society. An index of
devotedness to a common purpose.
2. Concentrated mental action. ¡§Thought upon His name.¡¨ Mind the
greatest thing in man. The believer sees God in all things
and his meditation
of Him is sweet. Constant mutual edification--¡§Speak often
¡¨ etc. Information
counsel
warning
encouragement.
III. The precious in
privilege.
1. Divine attention. ¡§God hearkened and heard it.¡¨
2. Divine remembrance. ¡§And a book
¡¨ etc. All the services of the
good registered for compensation.
3. Divine promise. Tender treatment. ¡§I will spare.¡¨ Great honour.
¡§They shall be Mine.¡¨ Great destructiveness. ¡§Then shall ye return.¡¨ (B. D.
Johns.)
The dignity of the people
of God
1. The people of God are dignified with the Divine approbation.
2. By the Divine solicitude.
3. By the Divine security.
4. By the Divine regard. They are to Him as jewels.
5. By a Divine promise.
¡§I will spare them.¡¨ Learn
from this subject full confidence in God. He has made full provision for you in
the obedience and death of Jesus. He will take care of you here
and glorify
you with dignity hereafter. Also learn humility; for what maketh you to differ
from others but the grace of God alone? (Hugh Allen
M. A.)
The making up of God¡¦s
jewels
The Lord makes up His
jewels--
1. By the word and ordinances of His grace. The word of inspiration
is the grand instrument which the Lord uses for hewing His jewels out of the
rock of corrupt nature
and bringing them from the dark mine of misery to the
light of everlasting felicity. It is an instrument of great power. It commands
holiness
supplies motives
and presents encouragements to the mind. The
exercises of praise and prayer are admirably adapted to refine and polish the
soul in the beauties of holiness
2. By the operations and dispensations of His providence. Looking at
providence on a comprehensive scale
redemption is its most striking and grand
display. The darkest as well as the brightest aspects of providence are
necessary to the making up of God¡¦s jewels. God¡¦s own saints are often the
better for being afflicted. Trials are necessary to purify the Church from
corruptions
to cleanse the heart
and rectify the life of individuals
and to
beautify them both severally and collectively in time
and make their character
shine in the light of eternity.
3. By the work and influences of His Spirit. The word and ordinances
of grace
aided by the operation and dispensations of providence
can do
nothing to convert or sanctify a single soul
unless the Spirit accompany them
with His blessing. Just as the hammer
or the chisel
or the saw
or the file
without the hand of the mechanic
cannot hew a single jewel out of the quarry
of nature
or polish it into beauty
so without the agency of the Holy Spirit
ordinances and providences
powerful instruments though they are
cannot
convince a sinner of sin
or lead him from the paths of error into the way of
God. The Holy Spirit dwells in the heart s of believers to polish and fit them
for shining as jewels in the mediatorial crown of glory. Let all Christians
then
make a right improvement
both for their own and their brethren¡¦s sake
of God¡¦s dealings. The more faith Christians exercise
the more godly will they
become; and the more godly they are here
the brighter shall they shine
hereafter in that world where everlasting peace reigns
and grace never
declines
where the sun of glory never sets
and where the sky of blessedness
is never overcast with clouds. (John Shoolbraid.)
The Lord¡¦s jewel
s:--
I. How may the
saints be compared to jewels? The word translated¡¨ jewels ¡§(segullah) signifies
a treasure
a peculiar treasure
as the Church of the Jews compared to all the
nations of the earth. The saints of God are more excellent in the sight of God
than all other men. They may be compared to jewels--
1. Because of their rarity. Jewels are only found in certain places
and only worn by certain persons. So the saints are said to be ¡§a very little
flock.¡¨
2. Because they cost the Lord Jesus very dear. Jewels are costly
things. Being rare
they are enhanced in price. The Son of God redeemed these
jewels by His own blood. This is a price of incalculable value.
3. Because He has an infinite esteem of them. They are His treasure
and His affections are where they are. Since they were purchased by the blood
of His Son
they are precious in His sight and honourable. He thinks on them
with approbation
He speaks of them
and to them
with delight.
4. Because He
keeps them in safety. They are set on His heart and cannot be taken away.
II. How shall the
lord make up his jewels? This refers either to His work in His jewels in time
or to His procedure at the day of judgment. It may refer to His work of grace
in taking them all from the corrupted mass of human nature. He begins the work
of sanctification in them
and brings it to a glorious issue. God refines His
people by His Spirit
by His word
and by His providences
till they become
without spot or wrinkle or any such thing. In the last sense of the
declaration
they shall be made up
when their number is completed in the day
of the Lord. And they shall all be presented perfect in holiness.
III. What is the day on which the Lord
shall make up his jewels? The great and notable day of the Lord. A day which
shall be the end of time
the end of the world
and of the present system of
things. A day for which saints are constantly preparing
for which they wait
which they love
and to which they are hastening. (Leumas.)
My jewels
Here is an inspired truth
setting forth the relation subsisting between God and His people
and
illustrating His love for
and joy in
them.
I. God¡¦s own
estimation of the real value of a sincere Christian. He calls them His ¡§jewels¡¨
or ¡§His peculiar treasure.¡¨ All rare and beautiful and precious things in earth
and heaven are employed as metaphorical of the value God puts upon His people
and the affection He bears them. A Christian man is more than a ¡§spirit
¡¨ he is
a redeemed and regenerated spirit. The value of a gem is not in its
composition
but in its crystallisation. Even a diamond is composed mostly of
carbon
but differs from the black coal of our furnaces only in this mysterious
transfiguration. And a change analogous to this has every saved soul undergone.
The spiritual man has
through gracious crystallisation
become a gem
reflecting Divine light
and thus fitted for a diadem. What marvel then that
God counts His people more precious than the stars
and calls them ¡§ His
peculiar treasure.¡¨
II. An explanation
of God¡¦s strange treatment of his children. The true believer may say
¡§If I am thus valued
why does He so afflict me?¡¨ The text suggests the answer.
After finding or purchasing a gem
the next thing is to polish it. And this is
always a gentle work. Of the rarer gems the ancients supposed the cutting and
polishing impossible. The large diamonds which ornamented the imperial mantle
of Charlemagne are yet preserved as uncut crystals. It was only later that men
learned how the diamond might be cut
by attrition with another diamond
and
polished on a wheel charged with diamond dust. And herein is found the only
criterion of the true gem. The service of the Christian¡¦s afflictions is
twofold. They prove and they polish the spiritual gem.
1. They are necessary to prove it. There are many counterfeits in
religion. Any reliable test of godliness must have power to go beneath the
outward show into the real essence.
2. Even when the piety is sincere
such afflictions are useful to
develop and discipline it. Before the diamond is set in a kingly crown it must
be roughly pressed on the diamond wheel. All afflictions are God¡¦s means of
polishing. Here we are instructed as to the seeming partiality of God¡¦s
treatment of different Christians
for men may be equally pious
and alike dear
to our Heavenly Father
and yet
their mortal experiences be widely dissimilar. Gems are of
different degrees of hardness
and are to be set in different conditions. They
require very variant cutting
and unequal polishing. So with the true people of
God; one is only smoothed with a file
while another must be pressed on the
grinding wheel. He will not grind His jewels more than they need.
III. A prediction of
the future dignity and glory of the children of God. ¡§In the day when I
make up My jewels.¡¨ The reference is to the great day of Christ¡¦s coming. The
metaphor is of a mighty conqueror
who
having overthrown all enemies
appears
laden with spoil
leading captive his foes
marching in triumph
magnificent in
regalia
over the royal highway. Then God¡¦s saints will be gathered to Christ
and God¡¦s ¡§jewels ¡§ be made up as precious stones into a crown
or as stars
into a constellation. In that great day of manifestation the moral rather than
the natural attributes of God are to be especially glorified. It is only in the
economy of grace that what we may term the Divine affections are perfectly
displayed. Let this fair picture be hung in our chambers of imagery. This
material universe is only a great platform
erected temporarily for the
coronation of Immanuel
and the redeemed spirits of the just made perfect. ¡§God¡¦s
jewels
¡¨--or as Isaiah has it
¡§God¡¦s crown of glory
¡¨ ¡§God¡¦s royal diadem.¡¨
The richest gems blazing in the many crowns of Immanuel will be the souls of
Christ¡¦s redeemed ones--these diamonds
dug from the black caverns of
death--these pearls
brought up from the stormy depths of hell--these
blood-bought
grace-preserved
grief-polished ¡§jewels of God.¡¨ (Charles
Wadsworth
D. D.)
The jewels of the King
1. Jewels represent superlative value. Nature¡¦s jewels differ from
God¡¦s
which are conscious and immortal. And yet by valuable things God
illustrates His appreciation of His children.
2. They represent surpassing beauty. Gems are nature¡¦s loveliest
gifts. In God¡¦s sight natural pales before spiritual beauty. We are only
beautiful when ¡§the beauty of the Lord our God is upon us.¡¨ God¡¦s brightest
earthly jewels are yet incomplete. When the cutting and burnishing are
finished
they are to shine as the stars forever.
3. They represent costly and self-sacrificing toil in their discovery
and ownership. When a Brazilian slave finds a gem of seventeen carats
he wins
his freedom. At what enormous cost God secures a soul!
4. Their worth and beauty represent the triumphs of science and art.
Diamonds are never worn in the rough. God develops the worth and spiritual
beauty of His children by the ministry of suffering. No lapidary ever knew so
well when and where to cut a crown jewel as does our Heavenly Father.
5. The King will gather His gems into His royal palace. God has long
loaned His jewels to the communities of earth. When the sun darkens
His angels
are to gather them from every land and sea. (S.V. Leech
D. D.)
The Lord¡¦s jewels
1. This title shows the estimation in which God holds His people. In
the Bible
God avails Himself of one good or beautiful thing to describe
another. The Christian is like a cedar in Lebanon
the most majestic and
beautiful tree in the forest. Heaven is a city of golden walls and gates of
pearl. So here
in like manner
He calls His people ¡§jewels.¡¨ The emerald
the
ruby
and the diamond
are the most precious and costly things in nature. These
are the things which God takes to illustrate the estimation in which He holds the good. He
knows the Capabilities of these immortal souls
that they can be ¡§equal to the
angels
¡¨ through the redemption of His Son Jesus Christ.
2. This title
¡§jewels
¡¨ suggests a reason why God¡¦s people are
sometimes so exercised by the providences of God. When diamonds and other gems
are first found
they are usually covered with a dark
rusty coating
every
particle of which must be removed. This process is long and expensive. Their
brilliancy cannot be fairly seen without it. The famous Koh-i-noor diamond was
subjected to repolishing with the help of a steam-engine for twenty-three days
and twelve hours each day. So it was with Job
and Joseph
and Jacob
and many
others whom God chose as His jewels. This disciplinary process is still going
on in the present age
in innumerable ways
by disease
loss of property
family afflictions
etc. Ill-treatment at the hand of one we have been
accustomed to esteem is especially hard to endure. But it is needed. There is
nothing that can polish the diamond like the diamond itself. Two diamonds are
rubbed
the one upon
the other
and the dust thus obtained is used for polishing. So
by the natural
constitution of the soul
and the providence of God
there may be nothing so
good for polishing as afflictions sent upon us by others. They may seem to have
an opposite effect for a time; may seem to ruffle our temper
and make us
rebellious and antagonistic; but
by and by
through the influence of the Holy
Spirit
like the vegetable oil that is mixed with the diamond dust to polish
the diamond
--the Holy Spirit working with these afflictions
--our tempers will
be subdued
and the ¡¥ peaceable fruits of righteousness ¡§ will be worked out
thereby.
3. This name which the Lord applies to His people warrants us in the
belief that God will never lose sight of any one of them. To say that God would
surrender one of His people
permit him to fall away and be lost
is to declare
a thing which is inconsistent for God to do. But does any one say
¡§Good! that
just suits me; I am going to live just as I please
for I shall get home to
heaven at last anyhow.¡¨ Then be sure that you are one of His jewels. If you are
not
the result may be terribly and eternally disastrous. The truth is
that no
true child of God will make any such resolution
or entertain such a thought.
There are some who do wander away from God; not
however
with a deliberate
purpose so to do
but because they have been led captive by the enemy. But God
will never lose sight of His ¡§jewel
¡¨ but will follow him by His Spirit and His
providences
making use of those things that are best calculated to bring a
rational soul back again to the fold from whence it had wandered away. (Homer
M¡¦Vay.)
God¡¦s crown jewels
I. The name by
which God calls his people. ¡§My jewels.¡¨ The comparison suggests--
1. The preciousness of good people. Jewels are
on account of their
intrinsic worth
or historic interest
the most valuable and highly prized
things on earth. God alone can comprehend the value of a soul. He knows the
price which was paid for his ransom.
2. Good people are compared to jewels on account of their beauty. How
the diamond sparkles and flashes! But its beauty is eclipsed when compared with
the beauty of holiness which God puts upon all His saints. That beauty is not
fully disclosed on earth.
3. God¡¦s people are like jewels because they need so much polishing.
While a single stain of sin remains upon our souls we cannot enter into the
kingdom of heaven. Every trial the Spirit of God employs as a means of
sanctifying us
and polishing us
to shine among the crown jewels of heaven.
II. God claims a
special property in good men. ¡§They shall be Mine.¡¨ All souls belong to Him by
creation and preser ration: but true believers are His by redemption.
III. God watches
over his people
so that not one of them is lost
¡§When I make up My jewels.¡¨
They are widely scattered now
but He will bring them together by and by. On
the day when He shall crown Immanuel Lord of all not one of them shall he
missing. (David Winters.)
Crown jewels
The Lord Jesus has been
gathering up His treasures for a good while
and on the great coronation day of
the judgment He will
in the presence of the assembled universe
show that the
good of all ages are His crown jewels. I speak to you of the jewel-finding
the
jewel-grinding
the jewel-setting. You have noticed the great difference
between jewels. Let not a Christian man envy another Christian man¡¦s
experience. You open the king¡¦s casket
and you see jewels of all sizes
shapes
and colours. Do not worry because you don¡¦t have the faith of that man
or the praying qualities of this
or the singing qualities of another. The
trouble is that you are not willing to be ordinary gold
you want to be gold of
twenty-four carats. Notice jewel-grinding. Christian character
like black
spots in an amethyst
must sometimes be cleared out by the flame; it must go
through the furnace. Nearly all God¡¦s jewels are crystallised tears. You can
tell God¡¦s jewel
as the lapidary tells the diamond. If the breath of
temptation comes on it
and soon vanishes
it is a real diamond. Note the
jewel-setting. The lapidary gets the gems in the right shape
gathers them on
his table
and then puts them into head-bands
or hilts of swords
or into
crowns. The Lord Jesus will gather up His people
and before the assembled
universe their splendour shall shine forth. (T. De Witt Talmage
D. D.)
Gem formation
In nature there is hardly
a stone that is not capable of crystallising into something purer and brighter
than its normal state. Coal
by a slightly different arrangement of its
particles
is capable of becoming the radiant diamond. The slag cast out from
the furnace as useless waste
forms into globular masses of radiating crystals.
The very mud on the road
trampled under foot as the type of all impurity
can
be changed by chemical art into metals and gems of surpassing beauty. God can
make jewels out of the most worthless rubbish. Let the cases of John Newton
of
the woman that was a sinner
of the thief upon the cross
of Augustine
of John
Bunyan
of Colonel Gardiner
and of thousands more
bear witness to the
almighty power of the alchemy of Divine grace. It only requires a supreme
surrender of ourselves
into the hands of the Holy Spirit to ensure the Scripture assurance
¡§They
shall be Mine in that day when I make up My jewels.¡¨ (Cyclopaedia of Nature
Teachings.)
A name for God¡¦s people
The impiety and irreligion
which so strongly marked the character
both of priests and people
in the days
of this prophet
are concentrated
as it were
in Malachi 3:13-15. Amidst this general departure from God
others existed of a
different description. Note--
1. The endearing name here given to the people of God. ¡§Jewels.¡¨ ¡§His
jewels
¡¨ or special treasure. Jewels are often purchased at an immense price.
The people of God are ¡§bought with a price.¡¨ They may be called ¡§jewels ¡§ from
the comparative fewness of their number. And also from their glory and beauty.
It is customary for the great and noble of the earth to adorn themselves with
their jewels on particular occasions
and so the Lord glories in His people
and sets them ¡§as a seal upon His heart
¡¨ and has them ¡§graven on the palms of
His hands.¡¨
2. The expression
¡§When I make up My jewels.¡¨ These figurative words
refer to the care and attention of the jeweller in polishing and arranging his
jewels
so as to make them appear to the best advantage. So shall it be with
the redeemed--God¡¦s jewels.
3. The time for making up the jewels is ¡§that day.¡¨ Either the day of
the Christian¡¦s death
or the day of final judgment.
4. God says of His people
¡§They shall be Mine.¡¨ Not that the people
of God were ever
at any time
not His. The expression indicates some special sign of
favour. (D. Adams.)
God and good men
I. Good men are
precious to God. They are here spoken of as ¡§jewels.¡¨ They are precious as
loving children are precious to their parents. ¡§Can a woman forget her suckling
child?¡¨ etc. Precious. He knows--
1. The worth of their existence.
2. The cost of their restoration.
3. The greatness of their capabilities.
Great as God is
a really
true man is precious in His sight.
II. Good men are
collected by God. ¡§In that day when I make up My jewels.¡¨ He will gather them
together one day: they
are now scattered abroad. By death He brings them together into a glorious
social state
the Heavenly Jerusalem.
III. Good men are
claimed by God. ¡§They shall be Mine.¡¨ They shall be sure to love Me and to
serve the interests of My creation--My friends
My children
etc. (Homilist.)
My jewels
This is what God calls His
people.
I. Some reasons
why Christians are like jewels.
1. Because jewels are very beautiful. God never made anything that
looks more lovely than some jewels do. Christians are beautiful
but their
beauty is not their own. When they learn to know Jesus
and to love and serve
Him
they become like Him
and this is what makes them beautiful.
2. Jewels are very valuable. Therefore we call them precious stones.
3. Jewels are hard to polish. The men who polish are called
lapidaries
from the Latin lapis
a stone. There are specks on us which
must be removed by polishing
and this is always hard and trying work. Church
and Sunday school may be regarded as God¡¦s polishing shop. (R. Newton
D. D.)
Divine jewels
I. The dignity of
the truly good. If we are His people
we are very dear to God. None of us can
rightly estimate His wondrous love. God loves us so much that He cannot do
without us. As a true-hearted man cares for his bride
so the Lord likens Himself
to a lover who graves the name of his bride upon the palm of his hand. Some
people are afraid this wonderful love will change as we change. No
God¡¦s love
to us is the same to-day as when first we prayed. The Lord¡¦s forbearance and
forgiveness is the most wonderful of His attributes. And God is very earnest in
seeking His jewels.
II. The certainty
of the future glory of the lord¡¦s people. People are apt to imagine that
because time moves slowly on
as if with leaden feet
that the great day here
spoken of will not come. But it is sure to come to every one. We shall surely
see the King of kings coming to judge men on the earth. (W. Birch.)
God¡¦s people regarded as
His jewels
I. The people of
God
such as fear Him
are His jewels. The fear of God is often put for all
religion. They that fear Him are such as have not only the form
but the power
of godliness. Such may be styled ¡§jewels¡¨ as rare
and comparatively few: on
account of their excellency; by reason of the place they have in God¡¦s value
and esteem; and in His care: as He esteems Himself honoured by them
and
greatly delights in them. God calls them ¡§My jewels
¡¨ as He is the
efficient or maker of them: the owner and disposer of them; and as they are set
apart for Himself.
II. What is implied
in ¡§making them up¡¨? This may be considered with reference either to their
being at present dispersed and mixed with others
or imperfect as to
themselves. It may mean His taking them out from the company of all others. God
will collect all His people into one body. Or God¡¦s making them up may imply
finishing what concerns either soul or body
and making them completely happy
as to both
to all eternity He will free them from all the imperfections of
their present state.
III. There is a day
coming wherein God will thus make up his jewels.
1. The day of the saints¡¦ dissolution.
2. The day of the general resurrection.
IV. How they shall
be the Lord¡¦s in that day. Then they shall be proclaimed to be jewels--
1. To testify His knowledge and approbation of them.
2. To shame and silence the hard censures to which they were liable
from a malignant world.
3. This will tend to the greater confusion of the prince of darkness.
4. Such a declaration will invite an universal regard to the
faithfulness of God
in what He promised to them
and engaged to do for them.
V. The title under
which God is represented as resolving upon the happiness of his people. ¡§Saith
the Lord of hosts.¡¨ A foundation of hope and comfort. As He has power enough to
engage for them. As He hath an absolute sway over all their enemies. It shows
that the number of the finally saved will be great
not small. (D. Wilcox.)
The Lord¡¦s jewels
The verse before the text
contains the praise of a little company of Israelites who
in the midst of
abounding iniquity
feared the Lord
and thought upon His name. A day comes
when all such shall be known
and when the Lord shall make up His jewels. Are
jewels with toil and danger and cost torn from earth¡¦s safe keeping? So are the
Lord¡¦s chosen ones redeemed from the earth by the precious blood of God¡¦s dear
Son. Are they procured by persevering search? So the Lord left heaven and came
to earth to seek that which was lost. Are jewels gathered from all lands and
from the isles of the sea? So are the Lord¡¦s chosen people. Do jewels of earth
vary in their colour
their splendour
their worth? So are there among the
Lord¡¦s people diversities of gifts
to each his proper place
to each his
proper talent
to each at last a place in the Saviour¡¦s diadem
some to shine
with meek and placid light
some with stronger and deeper brilliancy; but the
brightest and best of all the fair jewels of the eternal world will be those
who have most of the Saviour¡¦s image in them. Jewels are safely treasured
carefully deposited in the secret casket of their possessor
to be brought
forth on the festive or the bridal day
and gill Chat day arrives are little
known to anyone but their owner. So are the Lord¡¦s chosen ones in the secret
place of the Most High. But in the day when the Lord makes up His jewels each
shall be found in its proper setting
each shall shine with its proper lustre.
(W. H. Perkins.)
God¡¦s jewels
More closely
rendered
the passage is ¡§They shall be My peculiar treasure in the day I am
preparing.¡¨ For one
I like the familiar phraseology in our common version.
Christians are Christ¡¦s jewels. They are purchased by atoning blood; at an
infinite price was this Divine ownership secured. As the pearls are only won
from the depths of the sea by the dangerous dive of the fishers
so were the
pearls for Messiah¡¦s crown brought up from the miry depths of depravity by the
descent of that Divine Sufferer who came ¡§to seek and to save the lost.¡¨ The
most brilliant and precious gem known to us is of the same chemical substance
as the black and opaque coal of the mine. Crystallisation turns the carbon into
the diamond. The grace of the Lord Jesus transforms an opaque soul
as black by
nature as the jet
into a jewel which reflects the glory of Christ¡¦s
countenance. All the lustre that the ripest Christian character possesses is
but the reflection of the Sun of Righteousness. He who lives nearest to Jesus
shines the brightest. The tarnish which makes some Christians no more slightly
than a common pebble of the mire
comes from contact with an evil world. A
¡§pearl cast before swine¡¨ is not more out of place than is a professed follower
of Jesus in the society of scoffers
or in the haunts of revelry. Not all
precious jewels glitter in conspicuous positions. The Master has His hidden
ones; there are costly sapphires beneath coarse raiment
and up in the dingy
attic of poverty. That self-denying daughter who wears out her youthful years
in nursing a poor infirm mother
is a ruby of whom the Master saith
¡§Thou art
Mine in the day when I gather My jewels.¡¨ (T. C. Cuyler.)
God¡¦s estimate of
Christian character
I. The Christian
character as illustrated by the simile of the text--¡§Jewels.¡¨ This is
suggestive--
1. Of the beauty of that character. God delights in all beauty
but
most of all in that moral excellence which adorns His people. Let us seek to
realise this perfection. Flaws in jewels greatly depreciate their value and mar
their beauty; so do faults in Christians.
2. Of the strength of that character. Jewels are not easily broken
do not wear
do not fade. The religion of true Christians is not a fancy or a
fashion
but principle
habit
power. Tried by sorrow
sickness
temptation
persecution
it yields not.
3. Of the preciousness of that character. Jewels are of exceeding
value
so are God¡¦s people. They are precious in their influence upon society
and society sometimes knows it. The saints are ever precious to God. Who shall
tell how much He loves His people?
II. Let us observe
in what sense the saints are called the Lord¡¦s jewels. ¡§My jewels.¡¨
1. Because by Him they were rescued from a condition of impurity and
darkness. A jewel may well be called his who risked his life to secure it.
2. Because to Him they owe their purity and glory. True saints feel
that Christ has washed and perfected them
and they rejoice to give Him all the
glory.
3. Because to Him they owe their protection and security. God takes
care of His jewels (Job 1:10). ¡§I give unto them eternal life
and none shall pluck them out
of My hands.¡¨
III. The future
glory and distinction of the righteous. ¡§They shall be Mine.¡¨
1. They shall be His confessedly. Now we return
and cannot discern
between him that serveth God and him that serveth Him not
but God shall then acknowledge
us openly. He shall take the gem that may have been counted a mere offscouring
and set it in His
crown.
2. They shall be His unitedly. ¡§Make up.¡¨ God¡¦s people are scattered
now
but then they shall be gathered together.
3. They shall be His everlastingly. ¡§Made up.¡¨ All trial over
and
their state for ever settled in heaven. (W. L. Watkinson.)
The Redeemer¡¦s jewels
Little or nothing is known
historically of the prophet Malachi. The time
the place
the circumstances of
his birth are all unknown. We know nothing of his ancestors and nothing of his
descendants
if he had any. Like a meteor he starts up suddenly in the horizon
of the Church
and after running a brief career of exceeding brightness he
disappears as suddenly
leaving no trace behind except the few pages of
thrilling prophecy with which the Old Testament closes. His name signifies the
messenger of Jehovah. It was a period of fearful religious degeneracy. But not
all of the captives who returned from Babylon had corrupted themselves; there
were some noble exceptions; a remnant was preserved
a few remained faithful to
their covenant with Jehovah. To this faithful remnant our text refers.
I. The jewels.
Where shall we search for them? Not above in the garnished heaven of sparkling
worlds; not below in the mines of hidden wealth of gold and silver
where men
toil hard and long to gain what they deem precious; not where the topaz
the
coral
and the diamond sparkle; not in our national galleries thronged with
rare products of nature and art; not in the museums
with their vast collection
of valuable antiquities; not in the wardrobes and chests where the rich and
noble lock up their lustrous gems and jewels
to be seen and worn only on high
festivals. Not there must we look for Jehovah¡¦s precious treasures. We must
look for them in souls that have put on Christ
men who have become partakers
of the Divine nature
who have been created anew after the image of His Son.
God estimates men not by their physical structure
not by their mental qualities
not by their learning or wealth
but by their harmony or disharmony with His
will
by their sympathy or want of sympathy with His character and authority
by their dominant thoughts and feelings concerning Himself. ¡§They feared the
Lord¡¨--not that guilty tormenting fear which drives man away from God
that
shudders with remorse in His presence
that trembles beneath His frown
but
that holy fear which reverently approaches God
that devoutly yearns for His
fellowship
and yet is awed by a sense of His nearness
that fear which covets
His favour
and whose highest heaven is to live in the light of His approval
that fear which remembers His covenant and submits to His kingly authority.
¡§They thought upon His Name.¡¨ Twice He had revealed that Name to their fathers;
once to Moses as the ¡§I Am
¡¨ and once to Abraham as ¡§I am God All-sufficient.¡¨
To Moses He proclaimed what He is in Himself
the ¡§I Am
¡¨ the Self-contained
the Self-Existent
the Absolute
the Source of life and being. To Abraham He
proclaimed what He is to His people
¡§God All-sufficient.¡¨ The All-satisfying
portion
the All in All. This Great Name was ever in the thought of the
faithful remnant; they pondered over it as revealed to their fathers; they
gloried in its infinite superiority to the gods of the heathen. ¡§They spake
often one to another.¡¨ They not only thought about God in solitude and silence
but they cheered and strengthened one another in evil times by rehearsing
together the wonderful things which God had done for them and for their
fathers. It was no empty idle talk; it was so good that Jehovah hearkened and
heard.
II. The counting up
of His jewels. The text implies that a period is coming when the Lord of hosts
will make up or count up His jewels. But why number them?
1. That the Redeemer may have the satisfaction of knowing how many.
Of all the works of God
the great redemption by Christ is the greatest and
costliest. He upholds all things by the word of His power. But He cannot redeem
a lost race by a word of command or a fiat of His will. To redeem will cost Him
an effort
a sacrifice
even the greatest sacrifice that God can make. On
earth
under the pressure of an infinite sorrow
He was cheered by a glimpse of
His future reward. For the joy set before Him He endured the Cross
despising
the shame. He shall see His seed
a holy multitude which no man can number
and
as He surveys them He will rejoice in them as witnesses that He has not
laboured in vain.
2. He will
count His jewels
that the intelligent universe may know how many
that Jesus
Christ may give to hell as well as heaven
to demons as well as holy angels
to
the lost as well as to the saved
evidence that redemption has not been a
failure
but a complete success
a splendid triumph. When He makes up His
jewels it will be found that there are more men in heaven than in hell. Jesus
will have the majority. The minority would scarcely satisfy the great heart of
Him who endured the Gethsemane agony and the shameful death of the Cross.
3. That Jesus Christ may be assured that all the faithful are there
and that not one is wanting. The King whom the saints serve has His book of
chronicles where the name of every faithful one and all his noble deeds are
minutely recorded (Esther 6:1-3). We find frequent allusions to this book of records in the
Scriptures (Psalms 56:8; Hebrews 6:10; Revelation 3:5; Luke 10:20). When the Lord of hosts makes up His jewels there will be something
analogous to the calling of the roll. Jesus Christ has covenanted with the
Father that He will keep all those committed to Him. There must be no ground
for the Father in that day to charge the Son with unfaithfulness
with having
lost one through inability or neglect. Jesus Christ has also covenanted with us
that whosoever believeth in Him shall not perish but have eternal life. There
must be no room in that day for a single soul to say
I believed in His Name
and yet He has not saved me.
III. The exhibition
of His jewels. Having called the roll and ascertained that all the faithful
ones are there
He will exhibit them
hold them up as His most magnificent
trophies
His greatest
noblest work. Some of us are old enough to remember the
first Great Exhibition of the Industries of all Nations in 1851. On the first
entering that ¡§Palace of all Nations¡¨ how impressive
how overwhelming the
scene! We have had similar exhibitions since in Paris
Chicago
and elsewhere.
Jesus Christ is going to have the greatest exhibition the universe has ever
known. Throughout the centuries He has been preparing for it. In China
India
and Japan
on the continents of Europe
Africa
America
and Australia
in the
islands of the sea
in northern latitudes among the Esquimaux and Laplanders
God¡¦s agents are building up characters and beautifying souls for the great
exhibit. All nations will be represented in that vast gathering. On the Cross
He made a public exhibition of the enemies He conquered ¡§Having spoiled
principalities and powers
He made a show of them openly.¡¨ ¡§But when He comes
on His throne of judgment He will exhibit His friends
make a show of them
openly
that the intelligent universe may behold and admire His workmanship in
the innumerable multitude He has saved and sanctified
the jewels He has
burnished and made to flash with the beauty of God. There are the children of
sorrow and afflictions on whom God has employed the chisel
the hammer
and the
file to beautify and glorify them. Millions more of all climates and countries
of all nations and ages
will be there. Their names may not be registered in
the chronicles of earth
or carved in enduring marble
but they are written in
the chronicles of the King of saints
and He will publish them in high places
in the hearing of the principalities and powers in
that day when He makes up
His jewels.
IV. The
appropriating of them. ¡§They are Mine.¡¨ Under Roman law when a man received
into his family a stranger and adopted him as a son two ceremonies were
necessary; the one domestic the other legal
the one private the other public.
The ceremony of adoption was first observed in the family
where the stranger
was formally received and acknowledged as son in the presence of the entire
household. But in order to make the new relation between the adopting father
and the adopted son legal
the ceremony must also be observed publicly in the
presence of civil authorities and witnesses. The saints here on earth are
brought into the family of God
become members of the household of faith
receive the Spirit of adoption whereby they cry Abba
Father. This adoption is
private; the knowledge of it is limited at first to God and the adopted
believer. Afterwards it becomes known only to a limited circle of kindred
spirits
to whom the adopted may communicate the joyful fact. It is not an
event that the world cares to hear
or that awakens interest in any beyond the
select few. But our text points to a period when there will be a public
recognition of them as the sons of God. ¡§In that day.¡¨ This will not take place
in this life
not at death
and not on the entrance of each soul into the
heavenly world
but at the general resurrection. Until then only a fragment of
the saintly nature will be glorified. The Old Testament saints are not to be
perfected without us or before us; the New Testament saints are not to be
perfected before the saints of the Old Covenant: we are to be perfected
together. Abel
Abraham
Isaac
Joseph
Noah
Moses
etc.
will not be made
perfect without us. See how changed
how transfigured they all are
how old
things have passed away and all things have become new; they owe it all to Me
and to My dying love
therefore they are all Mine. To-day they are to be
crowned kings for ever. (Richard Roberts.)
Touchstones of character
Cornelia¡¦s noble answer to
the haughty princess who
on one occasion
visited her
is worthy of
remembrance. Proudly displaying her own flashing jewels
her royal guest said
¡§And where are yours?¡¨ upon which the mother of the Gracchi
as proudly calling
her children
said
¡§These are my jewels.¡¨ And He who sits upon the sapphire
throne
and has round about Him a rainbow like unto an emerald
and who created
all earth¡¦s riches for His own pleasure
yet places the highest value on the
humble man
who
by faith in Christ Jesus
becomes a son of God.
1. Jewels are rare. In comparison with common stones there are very
few of them. De la Bruyere says
¡§Next to sound judgment
diamonds and pearls
are the rarest things to be met with.¡¨ But rarer still are the true children of
God. Not one man in fifty the world over is a true Christian. As
after all the
search of the ages
there are not now more than one hundred great diamonds--a
very small number when we think of the efforts put forth to discover them--so those
who live the life more abundant are still in a very meagre minority.
2. For jewels are precious. ¡§The richest merchandise of all
¡¨ says
Pliny
¡§and the most sovereign commodity throughout the world
are these
pearls.¡¨ In recent days
for the Arabian Pearl
£1
10
000 was offered and
refused: and almost fabulous sums have been paid even for one precious stone.
After the pearl
the ruby is far and away the most valuable
in proportion to
its size; but never being found except in comparatively small fragments
has
not had that halo of romance associated with it which has surrounded some
diamonds. For instance
the Great Mogul Diamond
that ¡§ meteor amongst gems
¡¨
which was lost in the Tartar invasion
was valued at £600
000; the Regent of
Portugal is worth £400
000; the Orloff
£370
000; the Matan of Borneo
£269
000; the Koh-i-Noor
£140
000; while from Africa alone there come diamonds
to the value of £5
000
000 each year. In the light of these things let us
ponder the value God sets upon His chosen. Nothing is so excellent in the eyes
of men but God compares His people to it. As precious stones are the
aristocracy of minerals
Christians are the aristocracy of men.
2. Jewels
moreover
are pure. This
indeed
is the chief part of
their value; for the degree of impurity in any stone is just the measure of its
depreciation. The initial act of their formation is separation. Keep thyself
pure
thou child of God.
4. And jewels are brilliant. The only difference between a black
object and a brilliant one
say between a coal and a diamond
is in their
disposal of light. The one receives the light
sucks it up
and selfishly keeps
it. It thus becomes black. The other receives the light
but to reflect it back
again from a hundred facets. This is the brilliant. And the worldly man
receiving the blessing of God
which He sends upon the just and the unjust
seeks not the glory of the Great Giver; while the true child of God
getting
greater grace
finds his chief end in glorifying God and enjoying Him for ever.
¡§This people
¡¨ saith the Lord
¡§I have formed for Myself; they shall shew forth
My praise.¡¨ Sometimes we hear of a diamond shining in its own lustre
which is
very considerable nonsense
for a diamond has no lustre of its own in which to
shine. It is undoubtedly true that there are a few--a very few--diamonds which
are phosphorescent for a little while in the dark; but even this cannot be
called the inherent quality of the diamond; while the vast proportion of both
diamonds and other jewels only flash forth in the ¡§infallible lustre of
crystalline beauty¡¨ when the light shines upon them. And though for many years
it was thought that iridescence resided in the pearl
Sir David Brewster has
clearly shown that the delicate striations on the pearl¡¦s surface are the sole
cause of its radiance. Here the analogy lies close at hand. No light have we
and no brilliance
no lustre and no grace
until we come into the light of the
Lord.
5. And with brilliance there is beauty. That is to say
in addition
to the beauty of brilliance
there is the beauty of colour and form. Let the
beauty of our God be upon us
O Lord
let the beauty of our God be upon us!¡¨
6. Jewels are durable. In a standard work this definition is given:
¡§A gem is a real possession capable of affording pleasure to the wearer and
spectator
and retaining an intrinsic and marketable value
undiminished by the
lapse of time.¡¨ Diamonds outlast dynasties
and seem as if nothing will impair
their lustre. So gems
and not dewdrops
are chosen to represent the righteous who
still hold on their way.
7. The seventh quality of perfection in jewels is that they are
useful. They are used for boring
through the rock; for cutting glass; for setting pivots; for pointing watches.
But when thus working their beauty is hidden
while it is the triumph of a
Christian to be most beautiful when most useful. (W. Y. Fullerton.)
Christians rarely combine
all excellencies
It is a rare thing for a
Christian
as it is for a gem
to combine all excellent qualities. Few jewels
have more than two or three
marks of distinction. If large they are lacking in lustre; if pure they are
probably small; if well-coloured they may be of an awkward shape; if
beautifully formed may not be very heavy. Perfection in precious atones is
almost unknown
and there axe flaws even in the lives of the best Christians. (W.
Y. Fullerton.)
Varieties of Christian
character
And if there are
different shapes in gems
there are various forms of Christian life and
development. And if there are different colours in gems
there are also
varieties in the attainments exhibited in personal conduct. Each Christian has
his own place and power
and all exhibit the manifoldness of the grace of God.
The gentle
tender believers having the graces of the Spirit most fully
developed
are like the pearl; and you will remember that it is the pearls
which get the place of honour at the entrance to the New Jerusalem; most
valuable and most perfect
others enter by them. The enthusiastic disciples
full-blooded in their aggressive eagerness
are like the blushing ruby; while
some live so far above earth and earthly things
and so near the sky that they
resemble the deep velvety sapphire
¡§that stone like solid heaven in its blueness.¡¨ Others with
spiritual insight
the seers of the Church
are akin to the most costly
chrysoberyl or cat¡¦s-eye
with its beautiful moving line of light; while the
diamond
¡§fair as the star which ushers in the morn
¡¨ is the apt emblem of
those who have clear and definite views of truth. Men with a fresh and constant
Divine life are represented by the emerald
with its soft
clear green; and the
royal magnificence of exalted Christian character by the purple amethyst. Where
there is the rapture of intimate communion with God
we think of the golden
jasper; and of the opal
¡§which hath in it the bright
fiery flame of the
carbuncle
the fine refulgent purple of the amethyst
and a whole sea of the
emerald¡¦s green glory
and every one of them shining with an incredible
mixture
and with much pleasure
where there is the fully developed manhood of
faith. While for simplicity
the onyx; and for solidity
the agate is the
natural symbol. And if deficient in all these characteristics
there is still
the long list of unmentioned jewels
where
without doubt
every true heart may
find a place. It may be the blue lapis-lazuli
so much used in Italian
churches; or the green malachite
so often met with in Russia; or the
turquoise
which finds its home in Persia; or the chrysolite
now called
peridot; or the bloodstone
or jade
or tourmaline
or hyacinth
or cairngorm
or coral
or crystal
or any other of the score still unnamed. Natural
temperament very often determines the line of Christian development. A man with
a delicate constitution is most likely to display the gentle side of Christianity; while the
strong and vigorous
other things being equal
should be most energetic and
enthusiastic. (W. Y. Fullerton.)
Verse 18
And discern between the righteous and the wicked.
The characters of the righteous and the wicked contrasted
The time alluded to by the prophet appears to be the awful day of
judgment. Then shall ye return
says he
or be converted to a full sense of
your neglected duty and your past transgressions. The delusions of folly and
self-love shall be removed; conscience shall then no longer be blinded by the
corruption of reason
or overpowered by the violence of the passions; but vice
shall appear in all its depravity; guilt shall be attended with all its terrors
and remorse; and you ¡§shall discern the striking contrast between the state of
him that serveth God
and him that serveth Him not.¡¨ Without presuming to enter
upon any imaginary description of the difference between the righteous and the
wicked
in that future and invisible world to which we are all hastening
permit me to state some of the principal distinctions between ¡§him that serveth
God
and him that serveth Him not
¡¨ here
in this present life. Consider the
superiority of the pious
in their intellectual powers
as well as in the good
qualities and virtuous endowments of the mind. By the ¡§pious¡¨ understand only
those who admit
with grateful adoration
the glorious truths of revealed
religion
and who endeavour to fulfil the duties of the Gospel of Christ from a
steadfast belief in its holy sanctions.
1. The man who serves God may be said to possess a steady
elevated
and comprehensive mind. His belief is a strong and lively faith
implanted in
early youth
founded on the first elements of reason
cherished from
inclination
and deriving
force from the influence of sentiment and the energy
of the passions. He receives also that Divine revelation which graciously
instructs him in the ways of His providence; enjoins his duty under various
forms
and prescribes the reward of his due obedience.
2. The pious man
by frequent meditations on the Almighty Father
shows a natural relish for grandeur and sublimity. The mere worldling finds his
little passions
his low thoughts and grovelling desires completely occupied
with the pleasures and enjoyments which thins present world affords. If he
claim any pretensions to what is called a taste for the sublime and beautiful
it is confined chiefly to the productions of art. At most
he admires only
parts
not a whole; and looks with wonder at the mere creature
without raising
his thoughts to the great Creator. The truly religious man is the very reverse of this.
He can retire
as it were
within his own bosom
as into a sanctuary
and
converse with God. Every species of excellence is admired in proportion as it
approaches His wisdom
His goodness
or His power.
3. By ¡§lifting up our hearts unto the Lord¡¨ in the fervour of prayer
and thanksgiving it is impossible not to enjoy the highest sensibility of which
the human soul is capable;--a sensibility very unlike the sickly offspring of a
¡§worldly sorrow.¡¨ The sensibility cherished by an habitual intercourse with
God
purifies and ennobles the mind.
4. Akin to this intellectual enjoyment
is lively and impressive
gratitude. It concerns both Divine and human obligations.
5. A constant sense of the benefits which he receives from God
prompts the pious man to imitate the Divine love
within the small circle of
his power and abilities. Equally active is this Divine principle in promoting
peace
in teaching forbearance
and in the forgiveness of injuries.
6. None but the pious man can have a proper sense of the dignity of
his nature. Whatever the condition allotted to us here
however humble and
dependent
we know that not all the world can estrange us from our Maker
or
banish us from the presence of God. And nothing but sin can render the sense of
this Divine presence afflicting
or leave us
in our sufferings
comfortless or
degraded.
7. He who serves God with truth and fidelity will be endowed with a
larger portion of fortitude than he who serveth Him not. It was proper that a
life of discipline should abound with difficulties and dangers
temptations and
calamities. They are the appointed measures of our virtue and obedience
and
they form our spiritual warfare with the world. The pious man ever regards them
as the means of improvement in righteousness and true holiness; as such
he
submits to them with patience and resignation. Full of trust and confidence in
the Divine wisdom and goodness
he learns ¡§to suffer as a good soldier of
Christ.¡¨ If we take
therefore
from human life this grand principle of
action--a principle that equally influences our hopes and fears--that gives
steadiness of conduct
and fortitude of resolution in every situation
and that
combines itself with all our nobler passions; is it not easy to perceive that
we destroy the strongest support of moral duty
that we diminish the worth of
every virtue
and poison the purest source of happiness in the human heart!
Contrast
in conclusion
these two characters in the text
on the bed of
sickness
and in the hour of death. (J. Hewlett
B. A.)
Two classes
I. There are two
great classes into which the whole human race may be divided.
1. They are distinguished by their state.
2. They are distinguished by their character.
II. These two
classes are now so intermixed as to obscure the distinction between them.
1. They are intermingled in the family circle.
2. They are intermingled in the arrangements of civil society.
3. They are intermingled in the house of God.
4. They are intermingled in the membership of the Church.
III. There is a
period when the distinction between these two classes shall be rendered
visible.
1. The season of temporal calamity.
2. The day of judgment.
3. Eternity. (G. Brooks.)
The obliteration of moral distinctions
It is a sad state of society when the faculty of moral
discrimination is blunted. The minor prophets were appointed to rebuke just
such religious degeneracy.
1. One sign of the practical obliteration of these vital distinctions
may be seen in the prevailing depreciation of sound doctrine. Men try to mix
truth with error
as though they were not inherently different. To depreciate
the importance of discovering and embracing the truth undermines
also
the
true basis of morals. Sincere convictions may thus be urged to justify crime
as the Spartans upheld secret theft
and David Hume secret adultery.
2. Another sign is found in the practical association of those that
serve God and those that serve Him not. God decrees separation as the means of
expressing and impressing these vital distinctions.
Balaam and Saul
or consistent wickedness and inconsistent
profession:
It is wonderful to remark the numberless shades of character among
wicked men: the various modes and ways which they have of acting against God.
The character of Balaam was that of a very sinful man
in his mode of offending
God. Strikingly different to him
yet equally offending God
is the character
of Saul
King of Israel. The fact of a man¡¦s being raised up to bring about a
certain end
does not excuse him in acting wrongly
if
to gain that end
he
does act wickedly. We do not know now what God intends about us; yet we do know
we can act rightly if we like
with God¡¦s grace. For instance
Pharaoh¡¦s con
duct was doubtless overruled for good--to show forth His power. Still
Pharaoh
acted calmly and coolly; he might have acted rightly if he liked. He was
hardened because he neglected opportunities. In finding fault with Saul persons
might say he could not help it. He was appointed for a punishment.
1. The announcement of Saul¡¦s being elevated to the throne of Israel
came upon him suddenly; but seemingly without unsettling him.
2. Saul was not wanting in generosity and a feeling of gratitude. He
was calm
high-minded
generous
and candid. A brave man he was without doubt.
But take a deeper insight into Saul¡¦s character
and we shall find those
deficiencies which he certainly had. The first duty of every man is the fear of
God
a reverence for His Word
a love towards Him
a desire to obey Him
and
all this would be most peculiarly the duty of the King of Israel. Saul ¡§lacked
this one thing.¡¨ He was never under an abiding sense of religion
or what
Scripture calls ¡§the fear of God
¡¨ however much he was sometimes softened and
touched. His unbelief and fearlessness of God seem to have been shown by a
contempt alike for prophet and priest. The immediate cause of his rejection was
his impatience at the arrival of Samuel
and his own offering up of the
sacrifice. He rejected Samuel
and had recourse to others instead. There was no
profaneness
nor intentional irreverence in Saul¡¦s conduct. He finished his sad
history by an open act of apostasy from God: in consulting the witch of Eudor.
Unbelief and wilful ness are ever deaf to the plainest commands
and produce a
heart hardened against the most gracious influences. Balaam offers a singular
contrast with Saul. The leading difference was: the one was under a strong
abiding
sense and influence of religion and the fear of God; the other not. The one
trembled before a God he was forced to confess; the other appeared to respect a
Deity whom in heart he despised. Balaam knew what religion was; felt it
valued
it
was convinced of it. Saul knew
but calmly scoffed at and despised all he
knew. The one was the religious man grossly inconsistent; the other
the man
with no religion
yet wearing it as a garb. Learn from this contrast-
1. A character may be admirable
nay beautiful
without one spark of
God¡¦s grace
and therefore all its moral excellence be nothing worth; it may
shine in every virtue
amiability
disinterestedness
kindness
generosity
and
benevolence.
2. Inconsistency in a professing religious man is nearly equally bad
with the conduct of the unprofessing and open believer. (E. Monro.)
Consecration to God
I. What
consecration to God is.
1. It is not necessarily a seclusion from the fullest
largest life.
Long before the Christian era
men saw obscurely the need of their turning life
over from self
from itself
to the great Author of Life. This impulse wrought
itself into the excesses of pagan monachism
which has left unmistakable traces
in oldest historic records and in rock-hewn caves
--mute witnesses of vigil and
macerations for centuries
and even millenniums before the coming of Christ.
Separateness from the world
such as Christ taught
was not of the body
but of
the spirit. He emphasised
with the utmost distinctness
the duty of closest
contact. The purifying salt
the guiding light
and the useful talent could do
their work for the world only at the shortest range. Sympathy and free mingling
with men and women are a far closer copy of Jesus than is the solitariness of
cloister
cave
or desert.
2. Consecration to God is full self-surrender to Him
not
self-abandonment. Here is room for great mistakes. Never is a man more truly
master of himself
more vigorously alive
more earnestly at work
than when he
has given himself to God
and is
henceforth
in the Christian sense
not his
own. There is no diminution of being
no stinting of faculties
no abridgment
of opportunities.
II. Reasons for
consecration to God.
1. Refusing
or failing in this
we rob God. Men¡¦s faculties find their rest
and
possibilities of profitable exercise
only when intentionally and gladly used
for their Creator. Time
talents
all that there is in and of life
belong to
God by virtue of creation and preservation.
2. Disobedience is followed by penalty. For this sin Malachi
pronounced a curse upon Israel. Israel is not alone in this.
3. The rewards of obedience. A general enfranchisement and empowering
of faculties come to the soul when consecrated to God. Among the rewards of
obedience
a prominent place should be given to the peace of mind which comes
from harmony with God. Christian fellowship has glad rewards for those
consecrated to the same Master.
III. How is this
consecration made?
1. Deliberately.
2. Personally.
3. Affectionately.
However full and irrevocable the surrender which the soul makes of
itself
it is made gladly and lovingly. Meanwhile
till the day of reward
comes
every burden is lightened
because borne for God; every sorrow is
assuaged
because faith loves the hand that chastens; every dark cloud has a
bright lining
every weariness sings of coming rest
disappointments point to
the time
not far away
when every soul shall be satisfied
awaking in the
Divine likeness. Consecration on earth transfigured and fulfilled in the
glories of heaven. (Sermons Monday Club.)
¢w¢w¡mThe Biblical Illustrator¡n